EVENING TALKS

 

EVENING TALKS

with

SRI AUROBINDO

Recorded by A. B. PURANI

To the Reader

The reader is requested to note
that Sri Aurobindo is not responsible for these records as he had no
opportunity to see them. So, it is not as if Sri
Aurobindo said exactly these things but that I
remember him to have said them. All I can say is that I have tried to be
as faithful in recording
them as I
was humanly capable. That does not minimize my personal responsibility which I
fully
accept.

A. B. PURANI

Names of participants in the
evening talks:
From 1938-1950

1.  Nirod Baran

2.  Champaklal

3.  Satyendra Thakore

4.  Mulshankar

5.  A. B. Purani

6.  Becharlal

Occassional Participants:

1.    Dr. Manilal Parikh

2.    Dr. Srinivas Rao

3.    Dr. Savoor

INTRODUCTION I

The question which Arjuna asks Sri
Krishna in the Gita (2nd Chap.) occurs pertinently to many
about all spiritual personalities: “What is
the language of one whose understanding is poised? How does he speak, how sit,
how walk?” Men want to know the outer signs of the inner attainment,–the
way in which a spiritual person differs outwardly
from other men. But all the tests which the Gita



enumerates
are inner and therefore invisible to the outer view. It is true also that the
inner or the
spiritual is the
essential and the outer derives its value and form from the inner. But the
transformation about which Sri Aurobindo writes in his books has to take place
in nature. So, all
the parts of
nature–including the physical and the external–are to be transformed. In his
own case
the very physical became
the transparent mould of the Spirit as a result of his intense Sadhana. This
is borne out by the impression created on the
minds of sensitive outsiders like Sj. K. M. Munshi
who was deeply impressed by his radiating presence
when he met him after nearly forty years.

The Evening-Talks collected here may afford to the
outside world a glimpse of its richness, its many-sidedness, its uniqueness.
One can also form some notion of Sri Aurobindo’s personality
from

ii

the
books in which the height, the universal sweep and clear vision of his integral
ideal and thought
can be seen. His
writings are, in a sense, the best representative of his mental personality.
The
versatile nature of his genius,
the penetrating power of his intellect, his extraordinary power of expression,
his intense sincerity, his utter singleness of purpose–all these can be easily
felt by any
earnest student of his
works. He may discover even in the realm of mind that Sri Aurobindo brings
the
unlimited into the limited. Another side of his dynamic personality is
represented by the Ashram as an institution. But the outer, if one may use the
phrase, the human side of his personality,
is unknown to the outside world because from 1910 to 1950–a span of forty
years–he
had led a life of outer
retirement. No doubt, many knew about his staying at Pondicherry and
practicing some kind of very special yoga to the
mystery of which they had no access. To some,
perhaps, he was living a life of enviable solitude enjoying the luxury
of spiritual endeavour. Many
regretted
his retirement as a great loss to the world because they could not see any
external activity
on his part which
could be regarded as “public”, “altruistic” or
“beneficial.” Even some of his
admirers thought that he was after some kind of personal salvation
which would have very little significance for mankind in general. His outward
non-participation in public life was construed by many as lack of love for
humanity.

But
those who knew him during the days of the national awakening–from 1900 to
1910–could not have these doubts. And even these initial misunderstandings and
false notions of others began to evaporate with the growth of the Sri Aurobindo
Ashram from 1927 onwards. The large number of
books published by the Ashram also tended to remove the idea of the
other-worldliness of his yoga and the absence of any good by it to mankind.

This period of outer retirement was one of
intense Sadhana and of intellectual activity–it was also
one during which he acted on external
events,–though he was not dedicated outwardly to a public
cause. About his own retirement he writes,
“But this did not mean, as most people supposed, that
he (Sri Aurobindo) had

iii

retired
into some height of spiritual experience devoid of any further interest in the
world or in life. It could not mean that, for the very principle of his yoga is
not only to realize the Divine and attain
to a complete spiritual consciousness, but also to take all life and
all world-activity into the scope
of
this Spiritual Consciousness and action and to base life on the Spirit and give
it a spiritual
meaning. In his
retirement Sri Aurobindo kept a close watch on all that was happening in the
world
and in India and actively
intervened, whenever necessary, but solely with a spiritual Force and



silent
spiritual action; for it is part of the experience of those who have advanced
in yoga that,
besides the ordinary
forces and activities of the mind and life and body in Matter, there are other
forces and powers that can and do act from behind
and from above; there is also a spiritual dynamic
Power which can be possessed by those who are
advanced in spiritual consciousness,–though all
do not care to possess, or possessing, to use it, and this Power is
greater than any other and more
effective.
It was this force which Sri Aurobindo used at first only in a limited field of
personal
work, but afterwards, in a
constant action upon the world forces.1

Twice
he found it necessary to go out of his way to make public pronouncements on
important
world-issues, which shows
distinctly that renunciation of life is not a part of his yoga. “The first
was in relation to the second
world-war. At the beginning he did not actively concern himself with
it, but when it appeared as if Hitler would crush
all the forces opposed to him and Nazism dominate the world, he began to
intervene.”2

The
second was with regard to Sir Stafford Cripps’ proposal for the transfer of
power to India.

Over
and above Sadhana, writing-work and rendering spiritual help to the world
during his
apparent retirement there

1.   

Sri Aurobindo and his Ashram

2.    Sri Aurobindo and his Ashram iv

were
plenty of other activities of which the outside world has no knowledge. Many
prominent as
well as less known
persons sought and obtained interviews with him during these years. Thus,
among the well-known persons may be mentioned C.
R. Das, Lala Lajpat Rai, Sarala Devi, Dr.
Munje, Khasirao Jadhava, Tagore Sylvain Levy. The great national poet of
Tamilnad, S. Subramanya Bharati, was in contact with Sri Aurobindo for some
years during his stay at
Pondicherry;
so was V. V. S. Aiyar. The famous V. Ramaswamy Aiyangar–Va. Ra. of Tamil
literature–stayed with Sri Aurobindo for nearly three years and was influenced
by him. Some of
these facts have been
already mentioned in “A Life of Sri Aurobindo.”

Jung
has admitted that there is an element of mystery, something that baffles the
reason, in human
personality. One
finds that the greater the personality the greater is the complexity. And this
is
especially so with regard to
spiritual personalities, what the Gita calls “Vibhutis” and
“Avatars.”

Sri
Aurobindo has explained the mystery of personality in some of his writings.
Ordinarily by a
personality we mean
something which can be described as “a pattern of being marked out by a
settled combination of fixed qualities, a
determined character.” In one view personality is regarded
as a fixed structure of recognizable qualities
expressing a power of being;” another idea regards “personality as a
flux of self-expressive or sensitive and responsive being.” “But flux
of nature and
fixity of nature–which
some call character–are two aspects of being, neither of which, nor indeed
both together, can be a definition of
personality.” Besides this flux and this fixity there is also a
third and occult element, the Person behind of
whom the personality is a self-expression; the
Person puts forward the personality as his role, character, persona, in
the present act of his long
drama of
manifested existence. But the Person is larger than his personality, and it may
happen that
this inner largeness
overflows into the surface formation; the result is a self-expression of being



which

v

can
no longer be described by fixed qualities, normalities of mood, exact
lineaments, or marked out
structural
limits.”1

The
gospel of the Supermind which Sri Aurobindo brought to man envisages a new
level of
consciousness beyond Mind.
When this level is attained it imposes a complete and radical
reintegration of the human personality. Sri
Aurobindo was not merely the exponent but the
embodiment of the new, dynamic truth of the Supermind. While exploring
and sounding the
tremendous
possibilities of human personality in his intense spiritual sadhana, he has
shown us that
practically there are
no limits to its expansion and ascent. It can reach in its growth what appears
to
man at present as a
“divine” status. It goes without saying that this attainment is not
an easy task;
there are conditions to
be fulfilled for the transformation from the human to the divine.

The
Gita in its chapters on the Vibhuti and the Avatar takes in general the same
position. It shows
that the present
formula of our nature, and therefore the mental personality of man, is not
final. A
Vibhuti embodies in a human
manifestation a certain divine quality and thus demonstrates the possibility of
over coming the limits of ordinary human personality. The Vibhuti,–the
embodiment
of a divine quality or
power,–and the Avatar–the divine incarnation–are not to be looked upon as
supraphysical miracles thrown at humanity without
regard to the process of evolution; they are, in fact, indications of human possibility,
a sign that points to the goal of evolution.

In his Essays on
the Gita, Sri Aurobindo says about the Avatar: “He may on the other hand
descend as an incarnation of divine life, the divine personality and power in
its characteristic action, for a
mission
ostensibly social, ethical and political, as is represented in the story of
Rama and Krishna;
but always then his
descent becomes in the soul of the race a permanent power for the inner and
Spiritual rebirth.”2

1.   


The Life Divine, P. 833

2.   
Essays on the
Gita, P. 258

vi

“He
comes as the divine power and love which calls men to itself, so that they may
take refuge in
that and no longer in
the insufficiency of their human wills and the strife of their human fear,
wrath
and passion, and liberated from
all the unquiet and suffering may live in the calm and bliss of the
Divine.”1

“The
Avatar comes to reveal the divine nature in men above their lower nature and to
show what are the divine works, free, unegoistic, disinterested, impersonal,
universal, full of the divine light, the divine power and the divine loves. He
comes as a divine personality, which shall fill the
consciousness of the human being, to replace the
limited egoistic personality, so that it shall be
liberated out of ego into infinity and universality,
out of birth into immortality,”2

It
is clear that Sri Aurobindo interpreted the traditional idea of the Vibhuti and
the Avatar in terms
of the
evolutionary possibilities of man. But more directly he has worked out the idea
of the
“gnostic individual”
in his masterpiece The Life Divine. He says: “A Supramental gnostic



individual
will be a Spiritual Person, but not a personality, in the sense of a pattern of
being marked
out by a settled
combination of fixed qualities, a determined character; he cannot be that since
he is
a conscious expression of the
Universal and the Transcendent.” Describing the gnostic individual
he says: “we feel ourselves in the presence
of a light of consciousness, a potency, a sea of energy,
can distinguish and describe its free waves of
action and quality, but not fix itself; and yet there is
an impression of Personality the presence of a
powerful being, a strong, high or beautiful
recognizable Someone, a Person, not a limited creature of Nature but a
Self or Soul a Purusha.”3

One feels that he
was describing the feeling of some of us–his disciples–with regard to him in
his
inimitable way.

1.   


Essays on the Gita, p. 258

2.   
Ibid, p. 258

3.   
The Life
Divine, p. 883

vii

This
transformation of the human personality into the Divine–perhaps even the mere
connection of
the human with the
Divine–is probably regarded as a chimera by the modern mind. To the modern
mind it would appear as the apotheosis of a human
personality which is against its idea of equality
of men. Its difficulty is partly due to the
notion that the Divine is unlimited and illimitable while a
“personality”, however high and grand,
seems to demand imposition, or assumption, of limitation.
In this connection Sri Aurobindo said during an
Evening Talk: “No human manifestation can be
illimitable and unlimited but the manifestation in
the limited should reflect the unlimited, the “Transcendent Beyond.”
(28-4-1923)

This
possibility of the human touching and manifesting the Divine has been realized
during the
course of human history
whenever a great spiritual Light has appeared on earth. One of the
purposes of this book is to show how Sri
Aurobindo himself reflected the unlimited Beyond in his
own self.

Greatness
is magnetic and in a sense contagious. Whenever manifested, greatness is
claimed by
humanity as something that
reveals the possibility of the race. The highest quality of greatness is
not merely to attract us but to inspire us to
follow it and rise to our own highest spiritual stature. To
the majority of men Truth remains abstract,
impersonal and far unless it is seen and felt concretely
in a human personality. A man never knows a truth
actively except through a person and by
embodying it in his personality. Some glimpse of the Truth-Consciousness
which Sri Aurobindo
embodied may be
caught in these Evening Talks.

II

Guru
griha vasa–“staying in the home of the Guru”–is a very old Indian
ideal maintained by
seekers through
the ages. The Aranyakas–“the ancient teachings in the forest
groves”–are perhaps
the oldest
records of the institution. It was

viii

not
for “education” in the modern sense of the term that men went to live
with the Guru; for the



Guru
is not a “teacher”. The Guru is one who is “enlightened,”
who is a seer, a Rishi, one who has
the
vision of and has lived the Truth. He has, thus, the knowledge of the goal of
human life and has
learnt true
values in life by living the truth. He can impart both these to the willing
seeker. In
ancient times seekers
went to the Guru with many questions, difficulties and doubts but also with
earnestness. Their questions were preliminary to
the quest.

The
Master the Guru, set at rest the puzzled human mind by his illuminating
answers, perhaps even
more by his
silent consciousness, so that it might be able to pursue unhampered the path of
realization of the Truth. Those
ancient discourses answer the mind of man to-day even across the
ages. They have rightly acquired–as everything
of the past does–a certain sanctity. But sometimes
that very reverence prevents men from properly
evaluating, and living in, the present. This happens
when the mind instead of seeking the Spirit looks
at the form. For instance, it is not necessary for such discourses that they
take place in forest groves in order to be highly spiritual. Wherever the
Master is, there is Light And Gura griha–the
house of the Master–can be his private dwelling
place. So much was this
feeling a part of Sri Aurobindo’s nature and so particular was he to maintain the personal character of his work that
during the first few years–after 1923–he did not like his house to be called
an “Ashram”, as the word had acquired the sense of a public
institution
to the modern mind. But
there was no doubt that the flower of Divinity had blossomed in him; and
disciples, likes bees seeking honey, came to him.
It is no exaggeration to say that these
Evening-Talks were to the small company of disciples what the Aranyakas
were to the ancient seekers. Seeking the Light, they came to the dwelling place
of their Guru, the greatest seer of the
age, and found it their spiritual home–the home of their parents, for,
the Mother, his companion in
the
great mission, had come. And these spiritual parents bestowed upon the
disciples freely of their
Light,
their consciousness, their

ix

power and their grace. The modern reader may find
that the form of these discourses differs from
those of the past but it was bound to be so for the simple reason that
the times have changed and
the
problems that puzzle the modern mind are so different. Even though the
disciples may be very
imperfect
representations of what he aimed at in them, still they are his creations. It
is in order to
repay, in however
infinitesimal a degree, the debt which we owe to him that the effort is made to
partake of the joy of his
company–the Evening-Talks–with a larger public.

III

EVENING SITTINGS

Sri Aurobindo was
never a social man in the current sense of the term and definitely he was not a
man of the crowd. This was due to
his grave temperament, not to any feeling of superiority or to
repulsion for men. At Baroda there was an
Officer’s Club which was patronized by the Maharajah
and though Sri Aurobindo enrolled himself as a
member he hardly went to the Club even on special
occasions. He rather liked a small congenial
circle of friends and spent most of his evenings with
them whenever he was free and not occupied with
his studies of other works. After Baroda when he
went to Calcutta there was hardly any time in the storm and stress of
revolutionary politics to
permit him
to lead a “social life.” What little time he could spare from his
incessant activities was
spent in
the house of Raja Subodh Malick or at the Grey Street house. In the Karma yogin
office he
used to sit after the
office hours till late chatting with a few persons or trying automatic writing.
Strange dictations used to be
received sometimes: one of them was the following: “Moni (Suresh
Chakarvarty) will bomb Sir Edward Grey when he
will come as the Viceroy of India.” In later

years at Pondicherry there used to be a joke that
Sir Edward took such a fright at the prospect of
Moni’s bombing him that he never came to India!

x

After
Sri Aurobindo had come to Pondicherry from Chandranagore he entered upon an
intense
period of spiritual sadhana
and for a few months he refused to receive anyone. After a time he used
to sit down to talk in the evening and on some
days tried automatic writing. Yogic Sadhana–a
small book–was the result. In 1913 Sri Aurobindo removed to Rue
Francois Martin No. 41 where
he used
to receive persons at fixed times. This was generally in the morning between 9
and 10. 30.

But,
over and above newcomers, some local people and the few inmates of the house
used to have
informal talk with Sri
Aurobindo in the evening. In the beginning the inmates used to go out for
playing foot-ball, and during their absence known
local individuals would come in and wait for Sri
Aurobindo. Afterwards regular meditation began at about 4. p. m. in
which practically all the
inmates participated.
After the meditation all of the members and those who were permitted shared
in the evening sitting. This was a very informal
gathering depending entirely upon Sri Aurobindo’s
leisure.

When
Sri Aurobindo and the Mother removed to No. 9 Rue de la Marine in 1922 the same
routine
of informal evening sittings
after meditation continued. I came to Pondicherry for Sadhana in the
beginning of 1923. I kept notes of the important
talks I had with the four or five disciples who were
already there. Besides, I used to take detailed
notes of the evening-talks which we all had with the
Master. They were not intended by him to be noted
down. I took them down because of the
importance
I felt about everything connected with him, no matter how insignificant to the
outer
view. I also felt that
everything he did would acquire for those who would come to know his
mission a very great significance.

As
years passed the evening sittings went on changing their time and often those
disciples who
came from outside for
a temporary stay for Sadhana were allowed to join them. And, as the number
of Sadhaks practicing the yoga increased, the

xi

evening sittings also became more full, the small
verandah upstairs in the main building was found
insufficient. Members of the household would gather every day at the
fixed time with some sense
of
expectancy and start chatting in low tones. Sri Aurobindo used to come last and
it was after his
coming that the
session would really commence.

He
came dressed as usual in Dhoti, part of which was used by him to cover the
upper part of his
body. Very rarely
he came out with Chaddar or Shawl and then it was “in deference to the
climate” as he sometimes put it. At times for minutes he would be gazing
at the sky from a small opening at
the
top of the grass-curtains that covered the verandah of the upstairs in No. 9
Rue de la Marine.
How much were these
sittings dependent on him may be gathered from the fact that there were
days when more than three-fourths of the time
passed in complete silence without any outer
suggestion from him, or there was only an abrupt “Yes” or
“No” to all attempts at drawing him out

in
conversation. And even when he participated in the talk one always felt that
his voice was that of
one who does
not let his whole being flow into his words; there was a reserve and what was
left unsaid was perhaps more than what was spoken. What was spoken was what he
felt necessary to
speak.



These sittings, in fact, furnished Sri Aurobindo
with an occasion to admit and feel the outer
atmosphere and that of the

xii

group
living with him. It brought to him the much-needed direct contact of the mental
and vital
make-up of the disciples,
enabling him to act on the atmosphere in general and to the individual in
particular. He could thus help to remould their
mental make-up by removing the limitations of their
minds and opinions, and correct temperamental
tendencies and formations. Thus, these sittings
contributed at least partly to the creation of an atmosphere amenable
to the working of the Higher
Consciousness.
Far more important than the actual talk and its content was the personal
contact, the
influence of the Master,
and the divine atmosphere he emanated; for through his outer personality it
was the Divine Consciousness that he allowed to
act. All along behind the outer manifestation that
appeared human, there was the influence and
presence of the Divine.

What
was talked in the small group informally was not intended by Sri Aurobindo to
be the
independent expression of his
views on the subjects, events or the persons discussed. Very often
what he said was in answer to the spiritual need
of the individual or of the collective atmosphere. It
was like a spiritual remedy meant to produce
certain spiritual results, not a philosophical or
metaphysical pronouncement on questions, events or
movements. The net result of some talks very
often was to point out to the disciple the inherent incapacity of the
human intellect and its
secondary
place in the search for the ultimate Reality.

But
there were occasions when he did give his independently personal views on some
problems, on
events and other
subjects. Even then it was never an authoritarian pronouncement. Most often it
appeared
to be a logically worked out and almost inevitable conclusion expressed quite impersonally though with firm and sincere
conviction. This impersonality was such a prominent
trait of his personality! Even in such matters as
dispatching a letter or a telegram it would not be a
command from him to a disciple to carry out the
task. Most often during his usual passage to the
dining room he would stop on the way, drop in on the company of four or
five disciples and,
holding out

xiii

the
letter or the telegram, would say in the most amiable and yet the most
impersonal way: “I
suppose this
has to be sent.” And it would be for some one in the group instantly to
volunteer and
take it. The expression
very often he used was “It was done”, “It happened” not
“I did.”

There
were two places where these sittings took place. At the third place there was
no sitting but
informal talk to a
small number of disciples who were attending him after the accident in
November 1938.

From 1918 to 1922 we gathered at No: 41 Rue
Francois Martin, called the Guest House, upstairs,
on a broad verandah into which four rooms opened
and whose main piece of furniture was a small
table 3’/x 1 1/2′, covered with a blue cotton cloth. That is where Sri
Aurobindo used to sit in a hard
wooden
chair behind the table with a few chairs in front for the visitors or for the
disciples.

From 1922 to 1926
No. 9 Rue de la Marine, where he and the Mother had shifted, was the place
where the sittings were held. There, also
upstairs, was a less broad verandah than at the Guest
House, a little bigger table in front of the
central door out of three, and a broad Japanese chair–the
table covered with a better cloth than the one in
the Guest House, a small flower vase, an ash-tray,

a
block calendar indicating the date and an ordinary time-piece, a number of
chairs in front in a
line. The
evening sittings used to be after meditation at 4 or 4-30 p.m. After November
24, 1926,
the sitting began to get
later and later, till the limit of 1 o’clock at night was reached. Then the
curtain fell. Sri Aurobindo retired completely
after December 1926 and the evening sittings came to a close.

* * *

Then,
on November 23, 1938 I got up at 2 o’clock to prepare hot water for the
Mother’s early bath
because the 24th

xiv

was
Darshan day. Between 2.20 and 2.30 the Mother rang the bell. I ran up the
staircase to be told
about an
accident that had happened to Sri Aurobindo’s foot and to be asked to fetch the
doctor. This accident brought about a change in his complete retirement, and
rendered him available to those who had to attend on him. This opened out a
long period of 12 years during which his
retirement was modified owing to circumstances, inner and outer, that
made it possible for him to
have
direct physical contacts with the world outside.

The
long period of the second world war with all its vicissitudes passed through
these years. It was
a priceless
experience to see how he devoted his energies to the task of saving humanity
from the
threatened reign of Nazism.
It was a practical lesson of solid work done for humanity without any thought
of return or reward, without even letting humanity know what he was doing for
it! Thus he lived the Divine and showed us how the Divine cares for the world,
how he comes down and works
for man. I shall never forget how he who was
at one time–in his own words–“not merely a non-co-operator but an enemy of British Imperialism” bestowed such
anxious care on the health of
Churchill,
listening carefully to the health bulletins! It was the work of the Divine, it
was the
Divine’s work for the world.

There were no
formal evening sittings during these years but what appeared to me important in
the
talks was recorded and has been
incorporated in this book.

DECEMBER,
1938

10-12-1938.

Disciple:
Why did you choose Pondicherry as the place for your Sadhana?

Sri Aurobindo: Because it was by an Adesh–command from Above–I was asked to come
here.
When I was leaving Bombay for
Calcutta I asked Lele what I should do regarding my Sadhana. He
kept silent for some time [probably waiting to
hear a voice from the heart] and replied, “Meditate at
a fixed time and hear the voice in the
heart.”

I
did not hear the voice from the heart, but a different voice and I dropped
meditation at fixed time
because
meditation was going on all the time. When Lele came to Calcutta and heard
about it, he said that the devil had caught hold of me. I said, “If it is
the devil, I will follow him.”

Disciple: People say that ‘Yogic Sadhan’ was written by the
being of Keshab Sen?

Sri Aurobindo: Keshab Sen? When I was writing it, every time at
the beginning and at the end the
image
of Ram Mohan Roy came before me. So perhaps, Ram Mohan has been changed to
Keshab
Sen.

2

Do you know the origin of the name “Uttara
Yogi?”
Disciple: No, Sir.

Sri Aurobindo: There was a famous Yogi in the South who while dying said to his
disciples that a
Purna Yogi from the
North would come down to the South and he would be known by his three
sayings. The three sayings were those I had
written to my wife. A Zamindar–disciple of that
Yogi–found me out and bore the cost of the book “Yogic
Sadhan.”

Disciple:
Tagore never spoke at any time about Ramakrishna and Vivekananda except
recently
when he wrote a very
ordinary poem on Ramakrishna during his centenary. He used to tell girls that
Ramakrishna used very often to deride women saying “Kamini Kanchan”
are the roots of
bondage and still
women worshipped him.

Sri Aurobindo: I understand that Ramakrishna used to say
“Kama Kanchana”. When the division
came after his death one party said that he never uttered
“Kamani” but “Kama”. I don’t think there
was any one in Brahmo Samaj with spiritual
realization. Dwijendra Nath had something in him and
Shiva Nath Shastri too and perhaps Kesab Sen.
Bejoy Goswami ceased to be a Brahmo.

Disciple:
Lele had realization?

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, he had some, but as I said he had
ambition and ego.
Disciple: It is said that Christ used to heal simply by a
touch. Is it possible?

Sri Aurobindo: Why not? There are many instances of such cures.
Of course, faith is necessary.
Christ
himself said “Thy faith has made thee whole.”

Disciple:
Is faith always necessary for such a cure?

Sri Aurobindo: No, cure can be done without faith, especially
when one does not know what is
being
done. Faith

3

is
above the mind so that any discussion or dispute spoils the action of the
faith.

Disciple:
I knew also such instances of cure or help by faith. When I came to see you
first, you told
me to remember you
in my difficulties. As I returned I did so and I passed through all the
difficulties, but as soon as I came here I heard
many things from Sadhaks and did not get the same
result. I thought, perhaps, I was, not able to
open myself to you.

Sri
Aurobindo:
That is called simple
faith, or as some call it, “blind faith.” When Ramakrishna
was asked about faith, he said, “all faith is blind otherwise there is no
faith.” He was quite right.

Disciple: Is it because there is something in the nature of
environmental influence that doubt come
and one does not get the same result as before?



Sri Aurobindo: Both; the physical mind has these things, doubt, etc. and they come up
at one time
or the other. And by
contact with other people also faith gets obscured. I knew a shocking instance
in the Ashram. A truthful man came here. A Sadhak
told him that speaking of the truth always is a
superstition. One must be free to say what one likes. And then there is
another instance of a Sadhak
who said
that sex indulgence is no hindrance to yoga, it can be allowed, and everyone
must have
his Shakti. When such ideas
are prevalent no wonder that they cast bad influence on others.

Disciple:
Such people ought to be quarantined?

Sri Aurobindo: I thought of that but it is not possible. Mother at one time tried to
impose some
restrictions and
regulations but it did not work. One has to change from within. There are, of
course, other yogic systems which have such strict regulations. Buddhism is
unique

4

in that respect. There is a school in France
[Labratte?] which enjoins strict silence.
Disciple:
Is such exterior imposition good?

Sri Aurobindo: It can be good provided one sincerely keeps to it. For instance, in
that school in
France, people who
enter there know what they want and so keep to the regulation that are meant to
help them in achieving their aim.

The
world has to change,–people here are epitomes of the world. Each one
represents a type of
humanity and if
one type is conquered that means a great victory for the work. And for this
change a constant will is required. If that is there, lots of things can be
done for the Sadhak as they were
done.

Disciple:
Things became sluggish afterwards.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is when the Sadhana came down in the physical and the
subconscient that
things became very difficult. I myself had to struggle
for two years; for the subconscient is absolutely inert like stone. Though my
mind was quite awake above, it could not exert and influence down below. It is a Herculean labour, for when one enters
there, it is a sort of an
unexplored
continent. Previous Yogis came down to the vital. If I had been made to see it
before,
probably, I would have been
less enthusiastic about it. That is the instance of blind faith. The ancients
were quite right perhaps in leaving the physical, but if I had left it there,
the real work
would have remained
undone. And once it is conquered, it becomes easy for people who come after
me, which is what is meant by realization of one
in all.

Disciple:
Then we can wait for that victory!!

Sri Aurobindo: You want an easy path!

5

Disciple: Not only easy but like a baby we want to be
carried about. Is it possible? Sri Aurobindo:
Yes, but one has to be a baby–and a genuine baby.

Disciple:
Ramakrishna has said a Yogi need not be always like a drawn sword.

Sri Aurobindo: When did he say that and what did he mean by that? A Yogi has always
to be



vigilant, especially in the early part of one’s
Sadhana. Otherwise all one has gained can come down like a thud. People here
usually don’t make Sadhana the one part of their life. They have two parts:
one, the internal and other external, which goes
on with ordinary movements, social contacts, etc.
Sadhana must be made the one part of the being.

Disciple:
You spoke about the brilliant period of the Ashram.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it was when Sadhana was going on in the
vital and when it is that, everything
is
joy, peace, etc. and if I had stopped there, we could have started a big
religion, or something like it. But the real work would have been left undone.

Disciple:
Why did you retire? To concentrate more on your work?

Sri Aurobindo: No, to withdraw from the physical atmosphere. If I had to do the work
the Mother is doing, I would have hardly time to do my own work, besides its
being a tremendous labour.

Disciple:
Vishudhanand of Banares is said to be able to produce all sorts of perfumes,
scents, etc.

Sri Aurobindo: It is difficult to know if they (perfumes) are all materialization or
subtle perfumes
projected into the
physical or on the senses.

6

Paul
Brunton saw always some pressure accompanying him. When he saw my photo, it had
nothing
to resemble it but when he
saw me at the Darshan, he at once recognized me as that pressure.

Disciple:
Why does one rise and fall physically in meditation?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not the physical but the vital body separating itself from the
body. At one time
I thought physical
Siddhi was impossible. But in Alipore jail, once I found that my body had
occupied a position which it was physically impossible to have. Then again; I
was practicing to
raise my hands and
keep them suspended without any muscular control. Once in that raised
condition of hands I fell off to sleep. The warder
saw this condition and reported that I had died.
Authorities came and found me quite alive. I told them he was a fool.

There
is a French author Joules Romain. He is a medical man and a mystic. He can see
with other
parts of the body with
eyes closed. He says, “Eyes are only a specialized organ.” Other
parts can as
well be trained to see.
But scientists refused to admit his demonstration.

Disciple:
Ramana Maharshi does not believe in the descent (of the Supermind).

Sri Aurobindo: It–the descent is the experience of many Sadhaks even outside our
Yoga. An old
Sanyasi of the
Ramakrishna Mission saw a flood of light descending and when he asked he was
told it was all the work of the devil and the whole experience stopped
afterwards.

In Maharshi’s case he has received the thing in
the heart and has worked with it, so he does not feel
the descent.

Disciple: I
believe that grace is without condition.

Sri Aurobindo: That may be true from the side of the



Divine
but the man must try to fulfill the condition under which alone grace can act.

[In
this respect Sir Aurobindo’s writing in The Mother was quoted by a disciple
where he lays
down that “the
grace will work under the conditions of the Truth, not under those imposed upon
it by falsehood.”

Disciple:
Grace is grace, but one need not sit with folded hands. What is achieved is by
the divine
grace.

Sri Aurobindo: Grace is of course unconditional, but it is for men to fulfill the
conditions. It is as if man was continually spilling from a cup in which
something was being poured.

11-12-1938

Disciple:
Is there no justice for the misdeeds of people like S, V and N? Surely they
will have to
bear the consequences of
their actions? And yet how is it these people succeed in life?

Sri Aurobindo: Justice in this life? May not be. Most probably not. But justice is not
what most people believe it to be. It is said that virtuous people will have
happiness, prosperity etc. in another
life
while in this life they have the opposite effects. In that case, the people you
speak of must have
been virtuous in
their previous life. There is justice in the sense that the virtuous and pious
people
advance towards Sattwic
nature while the contrary one goes down the scale of humanity and
become more and more Asuric. That is what I have
said in the “Arya.”

(At this moment Mother came in and asked what was
the subject of talk.)
Sri Aurobindo
replied that X was asking about justice,

8

–whether
it exists. After some moments’ pause Mother said: “Of course, there is
justice; these
people suffer, they
are tormented and not happy within. But that unhappiness does not seem to
change them. They go from worse to worse; yes;
but in some cases as the divine pressure goes on acting, at some time,
especially during some impending catastrophe, suddenly some change takes place
in these people. We saw a number of people like that. e.g. those who were
trying to persecute
Sri Aurobindo.

Disciple:
You have said in your Prayers that justice exists. One cannot avoid the law of
Karma
except by Divine Grace.

Sri Aurobindo: N. may be a scoundrel but he has capacity and
cleverness and so he will surely
succeed.
It is that capacity and cleverness that succeeds in life not virtues etc.

Disciple:
To cheat people and get money? Is it cleverness?

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, it is cleverness or you may say, misuse of cleverness. But I
don’t say
that cleverness will not
have its consequences, but at the same time it is these qualities that succeed
in
life.

Disciple:
Why does not one believe in Grace?

Mother: It is because the human mind arranges and
combines things and does not leave any room for the Grace. For instance, when
one is cured of a disease or passes an examination, he thinks it is

due to medicine or some chance. He
does not see that in between, or behind, there may be Grace
acting on him. Is it not so?

Sri Aurobindo: They would call it luck.

Mother: If you don’t recognize the Grace how can it work?
It is as if you had shut your doors
against
it, Of course, it can work below, underneath so to say.

Disciple: Doesn’t it act unconditionally?

Mother: It does, especially in those people who have been

9

predestined for some thing; but if
one recognizes and expresses gratitude, it acts more forcefully
and quickly.

Disciple: Isn’t it because we are ignorant?

Mother: No, I know many ignorant people having the Grace
expressing a deep gratitude rising
from
the heart.

Disciple: We would like the Grace to act like a mother
feeding a hungry baby, giving things when it needs etc.

Sri Aurobindo: And who is the baby? (loud laughter)

Mother: But the Grace does not work according to human
demands or conceptions. It has its own
law
and way. How can it? Very often what seems to be a great blow or calamity at
the present
moment may appear to be
a great blessing after ten years and people say that their real life began
after that.

Sri Aurobindo: Grace is unconditional but at the same time, how
will it work if a man is throwing
away
the Grace, or does not recognize it? It is like a man spilling away from the
cup in which
something is being
poured. Mother said that she is interested to see the reactions with the two
fellows. It may have different results in both.
She can’t say how it will be different.

Disciple: Will it be a question of a degree?

Sri Aurobindo: No, difference of quality also. One is more
stupid and blind than the other who
knows
consciously what he is aiming at. So the former has less power to harm.

Disciple: Perhaps one may change for the better during
life?
Mother: That is romance.

Disciple: Especially S. may return to Ashram again.

Mother: {looked very amused and said) Do you think so?
When a man turns his back he has no
chance,
no possibility. One who is given a chance may have a

10 possibility.



Disciple:
The law of Karma according to Jainism is inexorable. Even the Tirthankars can’t
escape
it, and have to pay in exact
mathematical proportion.

Sri Aurobindo: It is a great thing. But too wonderful and
mathematical to be true. e.g. a son who lived for a short time cost a great
deal of money to the father for his ill-health. It was said that the
father had been the debtor to the son in previous
life and the son realized exactly the same amount
of money which he had lent by means of his illness
and died. (Laughter)

Disciple: There is what is Nikachit Karma or Utkata Karma
which cannot be avoided. It is like a
knot
that cannot be untied. It is like a silk thread tied and burnt.

Sri Aurobindo: It may be this Utkata Karma that brought about the accident (to his
foot).

Disciple: What is incomprehensible is the unmerited
suffering of the physical consciousness in
your case.

Sri Aurobindo: How do you know it is unmerited? Perhaps it was
to give me knowledge of what
intense
pain is. I had ordinary pains before which I could turn into Ananda. But this
was intense. I
never had the
experience when it came suddenly and abruptly, I could not change it into
Ananda.
When it became of steady
nature I could. Besides, we shall see afterwards the full significance. Of
course, I accept it as a part of the battle.

Disciple:
When will you be cured?

Sri Aurobindo: Don’t ask me the question. It is just what I can’t know, for,
immediately I say
something the
hostile forces would at once rush to prevent it. That is why I don’t want to
prophesy. Not that things are not known, or possibilities not seen. For
instance, there are things about which I
had definitely said. But where it

11

is
a question of possibilities, I don’t tie myself to that chain of possibilities
For if I do that I commit
myself in
advance to certain lines of movement and the result of it may not be what I
want, and I won’t be able to bring down that for which I am striving, it may
not be the highest but something partial. But plenty of people can prophesy.
That capacity is common among Yogis. When I was
arrested, my maternal-grand-aunt asked Swami Bhaskaranand, “What
will happen to our Aurobindo?” He replied, “The Divine Mother has
taken him in her arms; nothing will happen to
him. But he is not your Aurobindo. He is world’s Aurobindo and the
world will be filled with his
perfume.”.
Another time I was taken by Jatin Banerji to a Swami Narayan Jyotishi who
foretold
about my three trials,
white enemies and also my release. When my horoscope was shown he said
that there was some mistake about time and when
the time was corrected he replied, “Oh, the lead is turned into gold
now.”

Disciple:
Have you had any prophesy in dreams? Many people get dreams or vision of coming
events.

Disciple: I know the instance of A’s daughter-in-law who
saw him carried to cemetery and exactly
two hours after he died of heart failure.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, that is a good instance of that.

Disciple: Even without knowing the person concerned can one
prophesy like that? i.e. like

Bhaskaranand?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is an intuitive power. I once tried to
see a man who was to be elected and saw a figure seated in the office but quite
different and unknown, not the one elected. After some
time a quarrel took place between my
brother-in-law and a Government official and he was called.
But my mistake “Bose”

12

became
“Ghose”, and I had to go and see the man. I found the same man of my
vision sitting as the
Governor and I
was much surprised.

On
another occasion a friend of X. (V. Ramaswamy Aiyanger) was coming to see me
and I wanted
to have a vision of the
man. I saw him as having clean shaven head, bull-dog face; but when he
came, I found his appearance quite different,
regular South Indian Brahmin features. But curiously enough, exactly after two
years I saw that the man had changed to what I had seen of him in vision.
These thing are thrown out from the subtle world
to the surface consciousness. There is another instance; I was a great tea addict
and could not do any work without a cup of tea. The management
of tea was in charge of my brother-in-law. He
used to bring the tea at any time he woke up from
sleep. One day though I had much work to do I was
thinking, “When will he bring tea?” “Why does
he not come?” and looked at the watch when
exactly, at the very moment, the tea was brought. I
had made a rule never to ask anything from
anybody.

Disciple:
Is consciousness of the Divine possible in the physical cells even?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the cells can have peace, joy, etc. and when
they are quite conscious, they
can
throw out the opposing forces. When peace descends in the physical it is a
great force for cure.

Disciple:
Can one have peace without knowing it?

Sri Aurobindo: That is natural peace which is more than
quietude. But there is a positive peace
which one knows and feels. Truth also can descend in the physical, and
also Power, but very few
can bear
Power. Light also descends. I remember a disciple telling his Guru about the
descent of
Light in him.

13

The
Guru said, “The devil has caught hold of you”, and from that time the
disciple lost everything.

There
is an infinite sea of peace, ananda, above the head; if one is in contact with
it one can get
them always.

Disciple:
Do any thoughts or suggestions come to you?

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean? Thoughts and suggestions come to me from every side
and I
don’t refuse them. I accept
them and see what they are. But what you call “thinking” that I never
do. Thinking in that sense had
ceased long ago since I had that experience with Lele. Thoughts, as I
said; come to me from all sides and from above and
the transmitting mind remains quiet, or it
enlarges to receive them. True thoughts come in this way. You can’t
think out such thoughts, what
Mother
call “mental-constructions.”

Disciple: Was “Arya” written in that way?

Sri Aurobindo: No, it was directly transmitted into the pen. It
is a great relief to get out of that
responsibility.

Disciple: Yes, Sir?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t
mean responsibility in general but that of thinking about everything. Some
thoughts are given or reflected from outside. It is not that I don’t ask for
knowledge. When I want
knowledge I
call for it. The Higher faculty sees thoughts as if written on a wall.

13-12-1938

Mother came at 5-55 and meditated
till after 7-5. It is difficult to say whether the feast of silent meditation
was more precious than the conversation which happened to take place after
Mother left for evening meditation.

14

Sri Aurobindo: (with a smile to X.) Meditating?

Disciple: I am trying hard; Sir, for the last three-fourths
of an hour but have not succeeded. Many
unwanted thoughts come.

Sri Aurobindo: What are they? Disciple:
Some nonsense.

Sri Aurobindo: Some extraordinary non-sense like perpetual
attendance on the Maharajah or
successor
to Mussolini?

Disciple: No sir, the thought of the Maharajah comes very
rarely. But why does not one succeed in
meditating even after so many trials? The last time I had fine
meditation was when Dr. N. came
from
Madras.

But I see my friend N. at once
bends his head down and I believe he is merged in Satchidananda.
Disciple: Yes, in despair, perhaps. I go to sleep.

Sri Aurobindo: But there is power of deep concentration on your
face (laughter).
Disciple: Can one go to sleep in despair?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, as a refuge out of the despair. Apart from
that, it happens to everybody
except
for yogis who have made it their business to meditate. And even they find there
are periods of blankness when nothing seems to be done or going on.

Disciple: As he is a poet he may be living in higher
regions.

Sri Aurobindo: You must no forget Shakespeare’s saying that
“All poetry is telling lies.”
(laughter)

Disciple: He is not a poet of that sort.

Disciple: Perhaps you had a dose of meditation last week
which you are now assimilating; you are
suffering from spiritual dyspepsia.



Disciple:
But some people go into unconsciousness as soon

15

as they begin meditation. For example R. and C.
Even P. when he used to join became unconscious
of the body.

Sri Aurobindo: Some yogis require a support to prevent their bodies from falling
while they are in
meditation. Those
who practice Asan can remain erect.

There
are some who go to sleep standing like the horse. My grand-father, Raj Narayan
Bose, was
like that. One day we were
walking together at night. Suddenly we missed him. When we came back we saw him
sleeping standing.

Disciple: It is a question of habit and convenience, I
think.
Disciple: Was Raj Narayan practicing meditation?

Sri Aurobindo: Not much. It was a Brahmo-meditation. (Laughter)

Disciple:
Sometimes meditation used to come to me spontaneously at my place and I used to
get
into a condition when I would be
compelled to sit down to meditate.

Sri Aurobindo: It was probably the inner being insisting on it.
It is always better to allow it to
work.

Disciple: It used to happen even when I would be leaving
for my work. For days I used to feel that
my head was resting on the Mother’s feet. What is that?

Sri Aurobindo: It was the experience of Psychic Bhakti. Disciple: But then it went away. How to retain that
experience?

Sri Aurobindo: The condition is “to want that and nothing else.” If you have
that intense passion
for union with
the Divine then it can remain. It is too difficult, is it? So, it is better to
allow the
higher Power to work.

Disciple:
We have been trying hard to make him remain here for three months but he is all
the time
thinking of his family.

16

Disciple: I
feel a pull upward in the head while meditating.

Sri Aurobindo: It is the mind trying to ascend to the Higher
consciousness.
Disciple: Sometimes I feel myself widening.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, sometimes one feels the head opening or
expanding. That is the sign of the
mental
being opening to the Power.

Disciple:
Sometimes I see sky, ocean, or mountains and forests.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. One sees many things i.e. by the inner sight. These are symbols of
life or



energy. Sky is the symbol of the mind. Mountain
is the symbol of the being with its different planes
and parts with the Divine as the summit. Forests
are symbols of the vital.

Disciple:
These visions are seen by many (quite common).

Sri Aurobindo: Oh yes, as the mind expands so also the heart expands and also the
vital. If one sees those things outside oneself then that has only symbolic
significance but if one feels the
widening
or coming of Light in himself then that increases the opening and the receptivity
of the
being.

Disciple:
What do you mean by the Divine or the Supreme?

Sri Aurobindo: I mean by it a consciousness of which the Gita speaks as Param Bhavam,
Purushottama, Parabrahman, Paramatman. That is to say, the origin and the
support and cause of
every thing. It
is Omnipotent, Omnipresent, everywhere, You can’t define it. You limit it if
you
define it. It can be described as
Satchidananda. It is everything, it is everywhere, it is in everything.
It is impersonal, ‘Neti, Neti;’ it is also ‘Iti,
Iti’. You can have the experience of Satchidananda on
any plane. These things cannot be known by the
mind or by discussion. The “Golden lid has to be
broken”.

17

Disciple:
What will happen if one realizes the divine consciousness?

Sri Aurobindo: First thing, you will become calm, quiet; secondly, there will be the
feeling of
strength, I mean the
presence of a Force. Thirdly, the sense of the Infinite will be felt, you will
feel
yourself as the Infinite.
Fourthly, something will be always there behind which will be able to govern
the nature. Also the sense of Eternity and of yourself as Immortal. Even though
the body dies you know you are immortal. Also there are many things more. For
example, freedom from
every thing
even from the world. You realize the Transcendental and the Universal
consciousness.

Realization
of the fundamental being may be the beginning i.e. of the Essential being,
Consciousness and Delight. Then, everything is
divine, you are divine, you live in the divine: it is
one of the most Anandamaya experiences. It is a
concrete and real thing and not an idea. You
cannot explain these things. You can’t explain even a stone in spite of
your science. Everything is
not
material but mystical at bottom.

Disciple: Is it that this experience formulates itself
differently in different Yogis to suit their
personalities? or the difference is due to nature or personality
itself?

Sri Aurobindo: There, personality is no longer separate. It is the One putting itself
forward with a
special quality,
stress or emphasis. Nimbarka’s Bhedabheda means that.

Disciple:
You have also spoken of the veil in the heart.

Sri Aurobindo: It is also true. It sometimes requires removing the veil and breaking
the wall (in
the heart).

Sometimes
after this experience of opening it seems to close again. Most of the
obstruction comes
from the



vital. So, the being is prepared behind the veil
and when everything is ready it is projected in the
outer nature. But the demand of this Yoga is much
more than in any other and so it takes a long
time. All yoga requires patience above everything else.

Disciple:
We must have been working for it for many lives.

Sri Aurobindo: According to some yogas you have no right to the result for twelve
years. After
twelve years you have to
see if anything has happened or not.

Disciple:
When the preparation is being done behind, can we say that some of the Sadhaks
have
achieved very great advance like
the Vedic Rishis.

Sri Aurobindo: How do you mean? Their outer nature is not ready and so they can’t be
said to
have realized the Truth.
Nature is full of difficulties and obstacles and so the Higher Power works
behind. If it worked in the outer nature, it would
meet too many obstacles.

Disciple:
So it is the Bhedabheda philosophy?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not merely philosophy, but the fact is there corresponding to the
philosophy.
The Gita speaks of it as
“Avibhaktam Vibhkteshu Vibhaktam iva cha Sthitam”, “Undivided in
the
midst of divided things,
appearing as if divided.” This is not an illusion. I see a tree. The tree
appears to me as separate from me. But it is the
One, because one with Him. It is myself. It is
something else than a tree. It is impossible to think of it as something
else than the Brahman.

When I cast my eyes round the room
everything,–objects and the persons–, appears the Brahman. I
call you so and so but you are not that.

Ordinarily,
one tags on everything to the “ego”. But in that higher state you
understand the divine
working

19

better
than when you are a separate “ego”. It is when you can become
“nobody” and have
experience
of the Divine that you can be free. That is Mukti. I realized the One, my self
disappeared. It is difficult to think of my self
as so and so, son of so and so. It is a relief and
freedom to be “That” and to remain in
“It”.

Disciple:
Can it be called Shankara’s Vedantic realization?

Sri Aurobindo: About Shankara’s Vedanta, difficulty is that there are different
explanations by
various people. The
world is an illusion–and the Illusion is indescribable. This is the common
basis of all Shankara Adwaita–monism. According
to him soul also is Maya–as it has no real
existence. But I found that the experience behind this idea is quite
different. I had that experience at Baroda, and if I had stopped there I would
have been an orthodox Vedantin.*

14-12-1938. Time: about 5-30 P. M.

Silent atmosphere. M. meditating, P. sitting by
his side. Sri Aurobindo cast a glance at M. After
few minutes P. tried to kill a mosquito with a
clapping of hands. Sri Aurobindo looked at P. M.
opened his eyes. P. felt much embarrassed.

Disciple: Were you ever a Free Mason, Sir?

Sri
Aurobindo:
My eldest brother
was; from him I gathered that it was nothing. But Free Masons
had something when it was started. Have you heard
of Kaliostro? He was a mystic and a Free
Mason with a great prophetic

* Shankar’s followers disagree. According to Sri
Aurobindo, God is one and many at the same time–they may say, “a logical contradiction”.
So is Maya–true and false at the same time. That also is a logical
contradiction.

20

power. He prophesied about the French Revolution,
the raising of Bastille and guillotining of the King and Queen. He used to
prophesy about race-horses. He got into trouble and was imprisoned
and died in prison. He never charged any money
from any one and yet he was affluent. It was said
he knew alchemy and could make gold. (There was a
few minutes silence.)

Sri Aurobindo: Have you heard about Nosterdamus? No? He was a Jew. At that time Jews
had
great knowledge. He wrote a book
of prophecy in some obscure language and prophesied about the
execution of Charles I, the end of the British
Empire and the lasting of the Empire for about 330
years.

Disciple:
Then there is still a long time?

Sri Aurobindo: No, it was to be counted from the beginning of
her colonies. That means from
James
I. In that case it should end now.

Disciple:
From Chamberlain’s speech today it seems Britain is not obliged to side with
France in case of war,–it looks like it.

Sri Aurobindo: The English always keep their policy open so that they may change and
correct as
they like or want.

Disciple:
But they cannot join Italy or Germany?

Sri Aurobindo: Why not? They can share with them France’s African Colonies.

(At
this time Mother came. We looked towards her and changed our position from near
Sri
Aurobindo’s head.) She said,
“Don’t move, don’t move.”

Disciple:
We have decided to meditate when you come. (Mother made big eyes and we all
laughed.)

Mother: But if I want to hear the talk?

21

Disciple:
Then we will talk.

Sri Aurobindo: (addressing the Mother): I am giving him a few
prophecies of Kaliostro and
Nosterdamus
whom he has never read, he says.

Disciple: You know Bhikshu X was quite illogical; he called
me back from here?

Sri Aurobindo: All preachers are illogical. Were you a fervent
Buddhist? Is there much Buddhism
in
your parts?

Disciple: About one or two million people are Buddhists and
there is nothing of Buddhism in what
they
follow.

Mother: Nothing or something of Buddhism? Disciple: Something.

Mother: In China and Japan also no Buddhism is left. Only
ceremonies remain. In Ceylon they say
there
is still some authentic Buddhism.

Disciple: In Burma also the same is the case. There, people
put on ochre clothes at day and throw
them
away at night. But the Burmese people show a great respect for their Bikshus.

Disciple:
Yes. Respect to dress and not to the reality.

Sri Aurobindo: Lele used to have the same idea. Once I met a Sanyasi with him. Lele
asked me:
“You don’t bow down
to him?” I replied: “I don’t believe in the man”. Lele said:
“But you must
respect the
yellow robe”. The Sanyasi was one of the three people whom Vivekananda
drove out of
his house and they
became Avatars in one day (Laughter). Is he just the man to be so treated?

(As Mother had fallen into meditation we all tried
to
22

meditate with her. At about 7 P. M. she went for
the group meditation and we rallied again round
Sri Aurobindo.)

Addressing
X,

Sri Aurobindo: You seemed to have Ananda in your meditation.
Your face is beaming with it.
Disciple: Yes Sir. He is
nowadays beaming with Ananda.

Disciple:
(shyly), “I fell into deep sleep I think, but I had some visions also
which seem to be quite
distinctly
outside.

Sri Aurobindo: Then why do you call it sleep? It may be the psychic being, or the
inner being watching what is happening. Sometimes one goes into deeper state
and remembers nothing in his
outer
consciousness, though many things may be going on within. What is called
dreamless sleep is
really a sleep in
which dreams are passing on, only one does not know. Sometimes one discusses
problems in such a condition, gets the ecstasy of union, etc. One may also go
into other worlds with
one part of
this being and meet other forms etc. This is of course the first condition and
a kind of a
beginning of Samadhi.
From what you describe it may be an inner being’s experience and not
psychic. Even then, no doubt that your face is
beaming with Ananda, seeing which I thought you
went within.

Disciple:
Can one get the diagnosis of diseases in such states?

Sri Aurobindo: Oh yes. Many people are said to have their
problems solved in this way. I
remember
a peculiar experience of mine. As I was meditating I saw some writings crossing
over



my head Then a blank. Then again these writings
with a gap in the middle which meant that things
were going on though I was not conscious of it.

23

Sri Aurobindo (turning to another disciple): Now
what about your meditation?
Disciple: Not successful,
sir.

Sri Aurobindo: How? I saw you going in and powerfully wrestling your way towards the
Brahman
(laughter).

Disciple: Plenty of thoughts invaded me. I tried to reject
them and make myself empty. Sri Aurobindo:
The result was emptiness? (laughter)

Disciple:
But that is meditation, surely?

Disciple: NO, no, it is not, I could not go into
nothingness. I did not feel the Presence; was it
meditation, sir?

Sri Aurobindo: That is the beginning, the first condition, The mind must first be
quiet for the other
things to come
down. But one must not dictate to meditation what it should be or not. One must
accept whatever it brings.

Disciple:
But was I right?

Sri Aurobindo: Right about what?

Disciple:
That I was able to reject thoughts.

Sri Aurobindo: (laughing) How do I know? You are to say that. I
was only making comments on
your
statement.

Disciple:
You don’t know? We consider you as Omniscient.

Sri Aurobindo: You don’t expect me to know how many fish the fishermen have caught.
How much they have made out of it? People from Bombay used to ask me if the
price of cotton would go up, about race horses and about their lost children.
What is the use of knowing all that? You
know Ramakrishna’s story of the Sanyasi’s crossing the river. He said
it was a Siddhi worth half an
anna!
Of course if necessary one can know these things, in a way, but I am not
occupied with these
sort of things. I
have left it to the Mother. She hears what is being said at a

24

distance, meets Sadhaks in subtle planes, talks
to them. She said exactly what was going to happen
in the recent European trouble. We know what we
have got to know for our work.

Disciple: What puzzles me is that you never told me when
asked about the diagnosis of a patient. Sri
Aurobindo:
Why do you expect us to do your work?

Disciple:
Oh, that is different. But you said you have no latent medico in you and hence
you can’t
say. I thought you could
say by your intuition.

Sri
Aurobindo (addressing X): I was telling you we know what we have got to know.
But it is not
always good to know.
For instance, if I know a thing is going to happen I am bound to it, and even
if it is not what I wanted, I have to accept it, and this prevents my having a
greater or another
possibility. So I
want to keep myself free and deal with various possibilities. Below the
Supermind
everything is a question
of possibilities; so if I keep myself free, I can accept or reject as I like.
Destiny is not a thing fixed. It is just a complex
of forces which can be changed.

Disciple: Without knowledge of the thing how shall one
work? After knowing what is to happen
cannot
one reject it?

Sri Aurobindo: Knowledge comes by intuition. One can reject but
the result is not sure though
failure
may show the way for later success.

Disciple:
You have said in an August conversation that you have conquered death by
natural
process but you have no
control over accident.

Sri Aurobindo: Where? What did I say?

Disciple:
If I remember rightly, you wrote to me that dise-

25

ases
can’t end your life but still you have no control over accidents.

Sri Aurobindo: Oh! Diseases usually run a long course so one has time to act on them,
but if there
is a disease suddenly of
severe nature that ends life immediately, then conquest is not possible. And
about accidents the body has its own
consciousness and is always alert. But if the mind is occupied
with other things, then an accident can take one
unawares. As regards violence e.g. of a riot, I
would have to concentrate for four or five days to protect myself.

The
hostile forces have tried many times to prevent the Darshan but I have
succeeded in warding
off all those
attacks. This time I was more occupied with guarding the Mother and I forgot
about myself. I did not think that they would attack me. That was my mistake.
As regards the Ashram, I
have been
extremely successful but while I have tried to work in the world, results have
been
varied. In Spain I was splendidly
successful. General Miaca was an admirable instrument to work
on. Working of the Force depends on the
instrument. Basque was an utter failure. Negus was a
good instrument but people around him though good
warriors were too ill organized and ill
occupied. Egypt was not successful. Ireland and Turkey a tremendous
success. In Ireland I have done exactly what I wanted to do in Bengal. Turks
are a silent race.

Disciple:
What do you think of the China-Japan war?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t think much of the either party. They are
like six and half-a-dozen. Both too
much
materialistic. But if I had to choose; I would side with Japan. Japan at one
time had an ideal.
Their powers of
self-sacrifice, patriotism, self-abnegation and silence are

26

remarkable. They
would never lose temper in front of anybody. If his honour is injured he would
stab, but he must not lose self-control. They can work so silently and secretly
that no one knew
anything before the
Russo-Japan war broke out, how they had prepared themselves. All on a
sudden they broke out into war. They are
Kshatriyas and their aesthetic sense is of course well

known.

But
the European influence has spoiled all that. They are now very materialistic.
Now how brutal
they have become, which
is thoroughly un-Japanese.

Look
at Japanese soldier slapping the European officers, though they deserve it. The
Japanese
commander challenging
Chiang-Kai-Sheik to come out in the open field. The Japanese men
attacking their political leaders–all this is
unconceivable. This sort of swaggering is not at all
Japanese. In old times, the Japanese, even while
fighting, had perfect sympathy with those with
whom they fought.

Disciple:
But without brutalities (killing innocent inhabitants) it would be difficult to
win the war.

Sri Aurobindo: God knows. They are such fine warriors and a patriotic and
self-sacrificing nation
that one
would believe the contrary. But they are doing these things because of two
reasons
probably: 1. Financial
shortage which is not very convincing because of their immense power of
sacrifice. 2. Population of China.

Disciple:
Foreign help to China e.g. Soviet?

Sri Aurobindo: That is a possibility but the Soviet’s internal condition is such that
it can’t think of
giving much help
from out side.

Disciple: What about India’s independence? Is it
developing along your lines?
27

Sri Aurobindo: Surely not, India is now going towards European
Socialism which is dangerous for her; while we were trying to evolve true
genius of the race along Indian lines and all working
for independence.

Take
the Bengal movement. The whole race was awakened within a short time. People
who were such cowards and trembled before the sight of a revolver were in a
short period so much changed
that
police officials used to say “Insolent Barisal”. It was the soul of
the race that woke up throwing
up
very fine personalities. The leaders of the movement were either Yogis or
disciples of Yogis e.g.
Monoranjan
Guha Thakurate disciple of B. Goswami.

Disciple:
Was he a nationalist?

Sri Aurobindo: Good Lord. He was my fellow-worker. He also took part in secret
society. Then Brahmo Bandhava Upadhayay etc. Ramkrishna and Vivekananda’s
influence worked from behind.
The
movement with the secret society became so formidable that in any other country
with a
political past it would have
led to something like the French Revolution. The sympathy of the
whole race was on our side. Even shopkeepers were
reading Yugantar. I will tell you an instance;
while a young man was running away after killing a police officer in
Shambazar, he forgot to throw
away
his revolver. It remained in his hand. One shop-keeper cried out: “Hide
your revolver, hide
your
revolver.” Then you have heard of Jatin Mukerjee’s exploit.

Disciple: Yes
Sir.

Sri Aurobindo: A wonderful man. He was a man who would belong to the front rank of
humanity.
Such beauty and strength
together I have not seen, and his stature was like that of a warrior.



Disciple:
You told me Dr. R. uses mental intuition. So there may be various levels of
intuition.

Sri Aurobindo: By mental intuition I mean the Intuition which comes from Above. Don’t
get
mixed in the mind. I don’t say
that mental intuition is not correct but it is always limited because of
the
mixture. There is also the vital influence which very often becomes mixed up
with one’s desires.

Disciple:
How to get the intuition? By calmness of mind?

Sri Aurobindo: Calmness is not enough. Mind must be silent.

Disciple:
It will then take a long time.

Sri Aurobindo: Can’t say. Can take a short time, or a long time.

Disciple: But it won’t be possible to keep the silence
until one has realized the spirit.
Sri Aurobindo: One can train one’s mind to be silent.

(Dr. X took his leave and
as Mother lapsed into meditation we all tried to do the same. Then after
Mother had departed by 7 P.M., we rallied around Sri Aurobindo. He looked once
or twice at M.)

Disciple:
M. is beaming to-day.

Disciple:
That must be Kundalini then.

Disciple:
I don’t believe it. Is this vibration the Higher Force, Sir?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. It was trying to cure your lumbago, perhaps, and the first sign
was a little
aggravation (we all
laughed). You don’t believe in Kundalini?

Disciple:
No, Sir.

29

Sri Aurobindo: But you were telling about your “ascent and descent”
experience.

Disciple: Is that Kundalini? I did not know it (laughter).
But Kundalini is not the line of our yoga and you have not mentioned about it
any where.

Disciple:
Oh yes, he has in the “Lights on Yoga”.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. Kundalini is, of course, the Tantrik idea: The Shakti lying coiled
in
Muladhara awakes, rises up and
carries the consciousness upward opening all the chakras up to
Brahmarandhra and then meets the Brahman, and
then the descent begins. The Tantrik process is
more technical.

It
is curious to see the action of the Force in some cases. Some feel as if a
drilling were being done
in the
brain. Some people can’t keep the Force in. They sway from side to side, make
peculiar sounds. I remember one practicing Pranayama rigourously and making
horrible sound. I did not
hear of
his getting any good results. Sometimes the Force raises up what lies below–in
the lower
nature–in order to be able
to deal with it.



18th
December 1938 (4-30 P. M.)

Disciple: It is surprising that Swami Nikhilananda should
write about you. (There was an article in
the Hindu by Swami Nikhilananda)

Sri Aurobindo: It is Nishha (Miss Wilson) who arranged for its publication through
him, her
friend, before she came
here. (After some silence) It is peculiar how they give an American turn to
everything (Ref. to the article)

Disciple:
How is that the Americans seem to be more open?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, because they are a new nation and have no
past tradition to bind them. France
and Czech-

30

oslovakia also are open. Many are writing from
there to do yoga.
Disciple: Nisha was in communication with you for some
time?

Sri Aurobindo: Oh yes, for three or four years she has been in touch with us. She has
very clear
ideas about Yoga and is
practicing it there. (At this point X. arrived and remarked that she must be
very disappointed because there was no Darshan
this time.)

Sri Aurobindo: No. She has taken it in the right yogic attitude, unlike others.

Then X. went on asking how is it that there are
no Maharashtrian Sadhaks here in spite of Sri
Aurobindo’s being in contact with Tilak and remaining a long time in
Baroda.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes; it is strange. They are more vital in their
nature. The Bengali, Gujarati and
Tamil
people are more in numbers. It is now spreading in other parts C. P. Punjab,
Behar.

(The
talk then passed on to Supermind)

Disciple: I
hope we shall live to see the glorious day of the Supermind. When will it
descend, Sir?

Sri Aurobindo (remained silent to this question
and said): How can it descend? The nearer it comes
the greater becomes the resistance to it!

Disciple:
On the contrary the law of gravitation should pull it down.

Sri Aurobindo: That theory does not apply to it for it has
levitation tendency and if it comes down
in spite of that it does so against tremendous resistance.

Disciple:
Have you realized Supermind?

31

Sri Aurobindo: You know I was talking about the tail of the Supermind to Y. I know
what it is, I
had flashes and
glimpses of it. I have been trying to Supramentalize the Overmind. Not that the
Supermind is not acting. It is doing
so through Overmind and Intuition and the intermediate powers
have come down. Supermind is above the Overmind
(He showed it by placing one palm above the



other)
so that one may mistake one for the other. I remember the day when people here
claimed to
have got it. I myself had
made mistakes about it in the beginning, and I did not know about the
many planes. It was Vivekananda who used to come
to me in Alipore Jail and showed to me
Intuitive
plane and for about two to three weeks or so gave me training as regards
Intuition. Then
afterwards I began to
see still higher planes. I am not satisfied with only a part, or a flash of
Supermind but I want to bring down the whole mass
of the Supermind pure, and that is an
extremely
difficult business.

Disciple:
We hear that there will be a selected number of people who will first receive
the
Supermind.

Sri Aurobindo (made a peculiar expression with
his eyes and asked): Selected by whom?
Disciple:
By the Supermind, Sir?

Sri Aurobindo (Laughingly): Oh, that is for the
Supermind to decide. Whatever is the Truth will be
done by it, for Supermind is Truth-Consciousness
and things are established in the course by it so
that your complaint about the disappearance of
calm etc. will disappear, for they will be established
by the Supermind.

Disciple:
Will the descent of Supermind make things easier for us?

Sri Aurobindo: It will do so to those who receive the Supermind, who are open to it;
for example,
if there

32

are
thirty or forty people ready it could descend.

Disciple: You said that in 1934 Supermind was ready to
descend but not a single Sadhak was
found
prepared. So it withdrew. But you told me once that the descent of Supermind
does not
depend on readiness of
Sadhaks.

Sri Aurobindo: If none is ready to receive how will the
Supermind manifest itself? But instead of
thinking of Supermind one has first to open oneself to Intuition.

(At
this time Mother came and asked what were we talking.)

Sri Aurobindo: About intuition etc. (Then as Mother lapsed into
meditation we all joined. Mother
departed
for meditation at about 7 P. M.)

Sri Aurobindo: “Does any one know about S.? I am curious to know how his blood
came out drop
by drop from the body.
He seems to have Elizabethan turn of expression”. Then the topic turned to
the question of fear of death with S.
and N’s example. How they cover their body for fear of
catching cold etc.

Sri
Aurobindo told a story that at Cambridge they were discussing about physical
development.
Then one fellow in order
to show his own courage began taking out his genji one after another and
they found that there were about 10 or 12 on his
body!!

Disciple:
There are people who think that as soon as they have entered the Ashram they
have
become immortal! We must develop
our consciousness in order to conquer death, is it not?

Sri Aurobindo: People think so, because for a long time no death
took place in the Ashram. Those
who
died were either visitors or who had gone back from here. In the beginning
people had strong
faith but as the
number increased, the faith began to diminish. But why one should fear death?

33

Besides
fear has no place in yoga. The soul is immortal and the body passes. The soul
goes from
one life to another.

Disciple:
We fear because of our attachments.

Sri Aurobindo: One must have no attachments in yoga. Disciple: How to conquer fear?

Sri Aurobindo: By mental strength, will and spiritual power. In my own case, whenever
there was
any fear I used to do the very
things that I was afraid of even if it entailed a violent death. Barin
also had much fear while he was in the terrorist
activity. But he would compel himself to do those
things. When death sentence was passed on him he
took it very cheerfully. Henry IV, King of
France, had a great physical fear but by his mental will he would compel
himself to rush into thick
of the
battle and was known as a great warrior. Napoleon and Caesar had no fear. Once
when
Caesar was fighting the forces
of Pompeii in Albania, Caesar’s army was faring badly. Caesar was at that time
in Italy. He jumped into the sea, took a fisherman’s boat and asked him to
carry him
there. On the way a storm
rose and the fisherman was mortally afraid. The Caesar said “Why do
you fear? You are carrying the fortunes of
Caesar.”

I
remember one Sadhaka under an attack of hiccoup saying “If it goes on I
will die.” I told him
“What
does it matter if you die?” and the hiccoup stopped! Very often, these
fears and suggestions
bring in the
adverse forces which then catch hold of the subject. By my blunt statement the
Sadhaka realized his folly and did not, perhaps,
allow any more suggestions.

Disciple:
Is Barin still doing yoga?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know, he used to do some sort of yoga
even before I began. My yoga he
took
up only after coming to Pondicherry. In the Andamans also he

D. P.-3

34

was
practicing it. You know he was Lele’s disciple. Once he took Lele to Calcutta
among the young
people of the secret
society. Lele did not know that they were revolutionaries. One day Barin took
him into a garden where they were practicing
shooting. As soon as Lele saw it he understood the
nature of the movement and asked Barin to give it
up. If Barin did not listen to him, Lele said, he would fall into a ditch and
he did fall.

Disciple:
Barin, I heard, had a lot of experiences.

Sri Aurobindo: They were mere mental and he gathered some knowledge, much information
or
understanding out of them. I heard
that when he had begun yoga he had an experience of
Kamananda. Lele was surprised to hear about it.
For he said that experience comes usually at the end. It is a descent like any
other experience but unless one’s sex centre is sufficiently controlled it



may
produce bad results etc. emission and other disturbances.

Disciple:
Yes. He had brilliance.

Sri Aurobindo: But he was always narrow and limited. He would
not widen himself, (SriAurobindo showed it by the movement of hands
above the head) that is why his things won’t last.

e.g.
he was brilliant writer and he also wrote devotional poetry. But nothing that
will last because
of this
limitation. He was an amazing amateur in many things e.g. music, revolutionary
activity. He
was also a painter,
though it did not come to much in spite of his exhibitions. He did well in all
these but nothing more.

Disciple:
Barin in his paper “Dawn” began to write your biography.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know that. Did he publish a paper?

35

I would have been interested to see what he writes
about me.

Disciple:
It ceased after a short time.

Disciple:
You wrote back exclaiming great surprise that what everyone knows I do not
know.

Sri Aurobindo: In fact it is not true. That is, what it is. Barin does not give the
true state of things. I was neither the founder nor the leader. It was P.
Mittra and Miss Ghosal that started it at the
inspiration of Baron Okakura. They had already started and when I
visited Bengal I cam to know
about
it. I simply kept myself informed of their work. My idea was an open armed
revolution in the
whole of India.
What they did at that time was very childish. e.g. beating magistrates and so
on.
Later it turned into terrorism
and dacoities etc. which were not at all my idea or intention. Bengal is
too emotional, wants quick results, can’t prepare
through a long course of years. We wanted to give
battle through creating a spirit in the race
through guerrilla warfare. But at the present stage of
warfare such things are impossible and bound to
fail.

Disciple:
Then why did you not check it?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not good to check such things that press for strong expression,
when they
have taken a strong step,
for, something good may come out of it.

Disciple: You did not appear in the riding test in your I.
C. S.?
Sri
Aurobindo:
No, they gave me
another chance. But

36

again
I did not appear and finally they rejected me.

Disciple: But why then did you appear in the I.C.S.? Was it
by some intuition that you did not
come
for the riding test?

Sri Aurobindo: Not at all. I knew nothing of yoga at that time. I appeared for I.C.S.
because my
father wanted it and I was
too young to understand. Later I found out what sort of work it is and I
had disgust for administrative life and I had no
interest in administrative work. My interest was in
poetry and literature and study of languages and
patriotic action.

Disciple: We heard that you and C.R. Das used to make
plans of revolution in India while in
England.

Sri Aurobindo: Not only C.R. Das but many others. Deshpande was one.

Disciple: You used to write very strong memoranda for the
Gaikewad; you once asked him to go
and
give it to the Resident personally.

Sri Aurobindo: That is legend. I could not have said so. Of course, I wrote many
memoranda for
the Maharajah.
Generally he used to indicate the lines and I used to follow them. But I myself
was
not much interested in
administration. My interest lay outside in Sanskrit, literature, in the
national
movement. When I came to
Baroda from England I found out what the Congress was at that time and formed a
contempt for it. Then I came in touch with Deshpande, Tilak, Madhav Rao etc.
There I strongly criticized the Congress for its moderate policy. The articles
were so furious that M.G.
Ranade, the
great Maharashtra leader, asked the proprietor of the paper (through Deshpande)
not to
allow such seditious things to
appear in the paper, otherwise he might be arrested and imprisoned.
Deshpande approached me with

37

the
news and requested me to write something less violent. I then began to write
about philosophy
of politics, leaving
aside the practical part of politics. But I soon got disgusted with it.

Along
with Tilak, Madhav Rao, Deshmukh and Joshi who became a moderate later, we were
planning to work on more extreme
lines than the Congress. We brought Jatin Banerji from Bengal and put him in
the Baroda army. Our idea was to drive moderates from the Congress and capture
it.

As
soon as I heard that National College had been started in Bengal, I found my
opportunity, threw
off the Baroda job
and went to Calcutta as the Principal. There I came in contact with B. Pal who
was editing the “Bande mataram.” But
its financial condition was precarious and when B. Pal was
going on a tour he asked me to take up the paper.
I asked Subodh Mullick and others to finance the
paper and went on editing it.

Then
some people wanted to oust Bipin Chandra Pal from the Bande Matram and they
connected my name also with it. I called the sub-editor and gave him a severe
thrashing, of course
metaphorically.
But the mischief was done. Bipin Pal was a great orator, and at that time his
speeches
were highly inspired, a sort of a descent. Later on his power of oration also
got diminished. I remember he never used
the word independence but always said “Autonomy without
British control.” Later on when after
Barisal Conference we brought in the peasants in the
movement, forty to fifty thousand of them used to
gather to hear Pal; Suren Banerjee can not stand
comparison with Pal. He has never done anything like it. But he also
lost his power later on. He
was more
an orator. He had not the qualities of a leader. Then Shyamsundar and some
other people

38

came
in. It soon drew the attention of large number of people and became an
All-India paper. One
day I called the
Bengal leaders and said, “It is no use simply going on like this. We must
capture
the Congress and throw out
these moderate leaders from it.” Then we decided to follow Tilak as the
All-India leader.

They
at once jumped at the idea. Tilak who was not well known in the Northern parts
was chosen



for leadership. He was a real great man who was
disinterested and a rare great man.
Disciple:
What do you think of his Gita? Was it inspired?

Sri Aurobindo: I must say I have not read it.

Disciple:
You have reviewed it.

Sri Aurobindo: Then I have reviewed it without having read it (loud laughter). Of
course I might
have glanced through
it and I don’t think it is inspired. It is more a mental interpretation and he
had
a brilliant mind.

Disciple:
When some one asked Tilak what he would do when India got Swaraj, he said he
would
again become a professor of
Mathematics.

Disciple:
What about A. B. Patrika? It was also an extremist paper.

Sri Aurobindo: Never, it was impossible for A. B. Patrika to write openly like the
“Bande
Mataram” and
Jugantar about independence, guerrilla warfare, day after day in a paper. It
wanted
safety first. At that time
three papers were running in Bengal 1. “Jugantar” 2. Bande Mataram 3.
And Sandhya. Brahma Bandhava.
Upadhyaya editor of Sandhya was another great man. He used to
write so cleverly the Government could not charge
him; and our financial condition was so bad and
yet we carried on for five to six years.

Disciple: But did the Government not try to arrest you? 39

Sri Aurobindo: It could not. There was no such law and the press had more liberty.
Besides there was nothing in the papers that could be directly charged
against–so cleverly were they written.
“Statesman” used to complain that the paper Bande Mataram was
full of seditious matter from end
to
end. But yet so cleverly was it written that one could not arrest the editor.
Moreover the name of
editor was
never published. So they could arrest only the printer. But when one was
arrested
another came to take his place. Later on Upen Banerjee,
Sub-editor, published some correspondence
for which I was arrested on sedition charge, but as nothing could be proved I
was
acquitted. But in my absence as
they were disastrously up against finance they wrote something
very strong and the paper was suppressed. After
another arrest I published the “Karmayogin”.
There I wrote an article “Open letter to my
countrymen.” for which the Government wanted to
prosecute me. While the prosecution was pending I
went secretly to Chandranagore and there some
friends were thinking of sending me to France. I was thinking want to do
next. There I heard the Adesh to go to Pondicherry.

Disciple:
Why to Pondicherry?

Sri Aurobindo: I could not question. It was Sri Krishna’s
Adesh. I had to obey. Later on I found it was for the Ashram and for the Work.

I had to apply for a pass-port under a false name.
The Ship Company required Medical Certificate by an English Doctor. After a
great deal of trouble I found out one and went to his house. He told me that I
could speak English remarkably well. I replied that I had been to England.

Disciple: You took the certificate under a false name. (I
was a little surprised to hear he had

disguised
under a false name. So the question.)

40

Sri Aurobindo: Of course. If I had given my name, I would have been at once arrested.
With due respect to Gandhi’s truth I could not be exactly precise about my
name, otherwise you can’t be a
revolutionary.

Accompanied by Bijoy and preceded by Moni and
followed by my brother-in-law I arrived in
Pondicherry but had to assume false names for some time.

*

22nd December 1938.

(All
of us assembled in hope of hearing something from Sri Aurobindo. I was actually
praying for
it. But he did not seem
to be in a talking mood. So we were forced to keep quiet at the same time
thinking how to draw him into conversation and by
what question. Suddenly we find X. beaming
with a smile and looking at Sri Aurobindo. Then he takes a few more
moves nearer to Sri
Aurobindo and we
automatically follow him, he still nears and then he bursts out with a
question:
“To attain right
attitude what principles should we follow in our dealing and behaviour with
others?”

Sri
Aurobindo could not quite catch the question so it was repeated and he replied:
It seems to me
the other way about.
If we have the right attitude other things come by themselves. Right attitude
is
necessary; what is important is
the inner attitude. Spiritual and ethical principles are quite different, for
every thing depends on whether it is done for the sake of the Spirit or ethical
reasons.

One may observe mental control in dealings etc.
but the inner state may be quite different e.g. he may not show anger, may be
humble externally, but internally he may be proud and full of anger.
For

41

example
A. when he came here he was full of humility outside. It is the psychic control
that is
required and when that is
there right attitude follows in one’s external behaviour. Conduct must
flow from within outwards and the more one opens
to the psychic influence the more it gains over
the outer nature. Mental control may or may not lead to the spiritual.
In people of a certain type it may be the first step towards psychic control.

Disciple:
How to get psychic control?

Sri Aurobindo: By constant remembrance, consecration of
ourselves to the Divine, rejection of all
that stands in the way of the psychic influence. Generally, it is the
vital that stands in the way with its desires and demands. And once the psychic
opens it shows at every step what is to be done. (At
the later stage of the conversation Mother came
and soon after we all lapsed into meditation with
the Mother.

After
her departure at about 7 P.M. Sri Aurobindo asked X. “What is the idea
behind your
question? Something
personal or a general question?”

Disciple: I meant, for instance, how to see good in every
body, how to love all and have good-will

for all.

Sri Aurobindo: One has to start with the idea of good-will for all; to consecrate
oneself to the
Divine, try to see
God in others, have a psychic good-will and in oneself reject all vital and
mental
impulses, and on that basis
proceed towards the realization. The idea must pass into experience. Even then,
it is easy in static aspect, but when it comes to the dynamic experience it
becomes
difficult. For example, when
one finds a man behaving like a brute it is very difficult to see God in
him unless one separates him from outer nature and
sees the Divine behind.

42

One can repeat the name of the Divine and come to
divine consciousness.
Disciple: How does name do it?

Sri Aurobindo: Name has a power like Mantra. Everything in the world is power. There
are others
who do Pranayama along
with the name. After a time the repetition behind the Pranayama becomes
automatic and one feels Divine presence etc. Here
people once began to feel tremendous force in
their work. They would work without fatigue for hours and hours, but
they began to overdo it. One has to be reasonable even in spirituality. That
was when the Sadhana was in the vital. But when it
began in the physical
then things were different. Physical is like a stone, full of inertia and
resistance.

Disciple: Sometimes one feels a sort of love for
everybody, though the feeling lasts for a second it
gives a great joy.

Sri Aurobindo: That is the wave from the psychic. But what is
your attitude towards it? Do you
take
it as a passing mood or does it stimulate you to further experience of that
sort?

Disciple:
It stimulates but sometimes vital mixture tries to come in. Fortunately I could
drive it out.

Sri Aurobindo: That is the risk. The fact that mixture tried to
come in means that the wave came
through
the inner vital and thus took something from the vital. One has to be very
careful in order
to avoid these sex impurities.
In spite of his occasional outburst of violence X was a very nice and
affectionate man; but he used to get these things
mixed up with sex-impulse and the experience
was spoiled. This happens because sometimes one gives a
semi-justification to sex-impulse. But sex is absolutely out of place in Yoga.
In ordinary life it has a certain place for a certain purpose.
Of course, if you

43

adopt
the Sahaja Marga, it is different.

While
in jail I know of a man who had a power of concentration trying to make
everyone love him
and he succeeded.
The warder and all the people around him were drawn towards him.

Disciple:
That is what we don’t know (laughter)

Sri Aurobindo: The mind must be made quiet and the consciousness turned-not
mentally-towards
the aim. It no doubt
takes time but that is the way. There are no devices for these things.

Disciple: What difference is there between modification of
nature and its transformation?

Sri Aurobindo: Transformation is the casting of the whole nature in the mould of
realization.
What you realize you
project out in your nature. Christian Saints speak of the presence in the
heart.
That presence can change the
nature.

I
speak of three transformations: 1. Psychic, 2. Spiritual and 3. Supramental.
Psychic
transformation many had;
spiritual is the realization of the Self, the Infinite above, with its dynamic
side of peace, knowledge, ananda etc. That
transformation is spiritual transformation and above that is the Supramental
transformation. It is Truth-consciousness working for a Divine aim or
purpose.

Disciple:
If one has inner realization does transformation follow in the light of the
realization?

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. There may be some modification in the nature-part but
the
transformation is not automatic.
It is not so easy as all that. My experience of peace and calm in the
first contact with Lele has never left me, but in
my outer nature there were many agitations and
every time I had to make an effort to establish peace. From that time
onwards the

44

whole object of my yoga was to change nature into
the mould of the inner realization. I had to try
to change or transform these by the influence of my realization.

Disciple:
Even then a man with inner realization,–I don’t mean experience–won’t have
grave
difficulties such as sex in his
nature.

Sri Aurobindo: Why not? There can be anger, like Durvasa’s or sex. You have not heard
of the fall
of Rishis through anger or through sex? The Yogis pass
beyond the stage of good and evil. Ordinary
questions of morality don’t arise in them. They look upon outer nature as a
child behaving
according to its
wants. I think X’s fall came in that way. He had gone into the higher mind, I
do not
know, if not even to the
overmind state; he used to be guided by an inner voice which he accepted
as the voice of the Divine and did everything in
the light of that voice. When people were asking
him about his conduct I am told he replied that it was by the voice of
God and that every Siddha
had done
that. You have heard of Agymananda Swami who went to London? He was arrested in
England for making love to girls.

Disciple:
Would not the inner realization stop because of these outer indulgences.

Sri Aurobindo: It depends on how far one has gone in the path in spiritual
realization. There are
any number of
passages, crossways and paths; one may be at liberty to whatever yoga one
likes.
But in our yoga we insist on
the transformation of outer nature as well. And when I say something is
necessary in yoga, it means in “our yoga”; it does not apply to yoga
with other aims.

(There
was lull for some time after this.)

Then
Sri Aurobindo asked: Do you know

45

anything
about M.?

Disciple:
My impression was not favourable. I was not personally attracted by him.

Sri Aurobindo: When I saw his photo I had an impression that he is a man with strong
vital power.



When
I saw that he was advertising about himself as Messiah I began to doubt his
genuineness. His
sadhana seems to be
in the vital and it is in these cases that the power descends and unfortunately
people are attracted by these
powers. In the spiritual and the psychics even in mental sadhana,
power can come, but it comes automatically without
one asking for it.

Y.
was another M. with a powerful vital being. At one time I had strong hopes
about him. But
people whose sadhana
is on a vital basis pass into what I have called the Intermediate Zone and
hardly go beyond the vital. It is like a jungle and it is comparatively much
easy with those people
who are weak
and have no such power. He used to think that he had put himself in the
Divine’s
hand and the Divine is in
him. We had to be severe with him to disillusion him of his idea. That is
why he could not remain here. He went back and
became a guru with about thirty or forty disciples
around him. Gurugiri (Master-ship) comes very
often to these people. He did all that in my name which I heartily disliked. Unfortunately
his mind was not equally powerfully developed as his vital.
He had the fighter’s mind not the thinker’s. We
often put a strong force on him and as a result he
used to become very lucid for a time and he could
see his wrongs. But immediately his vital rushed
back and took control of his mind, it all used to be wiped out. If his
mind had been as developed perhaps he would have been able to retain the
clarity. The intellect helps one to

46

separate oneself from the vital and look at it
dispassionately. The mind also can deceive but not so
much. M. is another of this type.

Disciple:
Why did he go away from here?

Sri Aurobindo: Because he wanted to be an Avatar and because he
could not get rid of the
attachment
to his work. He is very unscrupulous.

Disciple:
Has he some power?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. But not an occult power like the others.
Before that he was quite an ordinary
man
with some possibilities. When I came out of the jail, you know, I was staying
in his house and
I was full of
certain force. He got a share of it.

Disciple:
How?

Sri Aurobindo: He was doing some kind of yoga. I gave him some instructions. From them
he got
his power.

Disciple:
Was he working on your idea?

Sri Aurobindo: When I was leaving Bengal I thought it might be possible to work
through him on
condition that he
remained faithful to me. That he could never be. His own self came to the front
though the original push was from
me, now it is not my force that is working there. These things
become easily unspiritualised.

Disciple: In
his “Jivan Sangini” he makes a lot of fuss over his wife.

Sri Aurobindo: She struck me as a common-place woman though a good woman. She was a
better
woman than he as a man. I saw
her only once by chance as she was not used to come out before
people.



Disciple:
He had developed a powerful Bengali style.

47

Sri Aurobindo: Is that so? He was once Translating the Veda in Bengali.

Disciple: His Bengali, you know, was like Christian
Missionary’s Bengali. You know what it is
like.

23rd December 1938

We have assembled as usual, and are eager to
resume the talk. But nobody could begin without
some hint or gesture from Sri Aurobindo. He was lying calmly in his bed.

A
disciple made an approach to Sri Aurobindo half-hesitatingly. This made another
disciple roar
with laughter (Sri
Aurobindo heard the laughter)

Disciple: X. is roaring with laughter.
Sri Aurobindo: Descent of Ananda?

This primary breaking of the ice made the
atmosphere a little encouraging So, X catching the
chance shot the following question with a beaming
face:

Disciple: Because the hostile forces offer resistance to
the Divine manifestation in the world and some of them become sometimes
victorious (at least for the time being) can one logically say that
the Divine lacks Omnipotence? It is not my
question but somebody else’s.

Sri Aurobindo: (turning his head to him) It depends on what you
mean by Omnipotence. If the
idea is
that God must always succeed then we must conclude that he is not Omnipotent.
Do you
mean to say that he must
always succeed against the resistance and then only he may be called
Omnipotent? People have very queer ideas of
Omnipotence. Resistance is the law of evolution.
Resistance comes from ignorance and ignorance is a part of
inconscience: the whole thing starts
from

48

ignorance
that is inconscience. At the very beginning when the opposition between
ignorance and
knowledge was created,
there was the very denial of the Divine. It is his Lila that the manifestation
shall proceed through resistance and struggle:
what kind of Lila, or play, it is in which side goes on
winning? Divine Omnipotence generally works
through the universal law. There are forces of
Light and forces of Darkness. To say that the forces of Light shall
always succeed is the same as
saying
that truth and good shall always succeed, though there is no such thing as
unmixed truth and
unmixed good.
Divine Omnipotence intervenes only at critical or decisive moments.

Every
time the Light has tried to descend it has met with resistance and opposition.
Christ was
crucified. You may say,
“Why should it be like that when he was innocent?” and yet that was
the
Divine dispensation. Buddha was
denied; sons of Light come, the earth denies them, rejects them
in substance. Only a small minority grows towards
a spiritual birth. It is through them the Divine
manifestation takes place. What remains of Buddhism today except a few
decrees of Asoka and a
few hundred
thousand Buddhists?

Disciple: Asoka helped in propagating Buddhism.

Sri Aurobindo: Anybody could have done that.

Disciple:
But it is through his aid that it became all-powerful.

Sri Aurobindo: If kings and emperors had left Buddhism to those
people who were really spiritual it would have been much better for real
Buddhism. It was after Constantine embraced Christianity
that it began to decline. The king of Norway, on
whom Longfellow wrote a poem, killed all people
who were not Christians

49

and
thus succeeded in establishing Christianity! The same happened to Mohammedanism.
When it
succeeded the followers of
the Prophet became Khalifas, then the religion declined. It is not kings and
emperors that keep alive spirituality but people who are really spiritual that
do so.

Disciple:
Asoka sacrificed everything for Buddhism.

Sri Aurobindo: But he remained emperor till the end. When kings and emperors try to
spread
religion they become like
Asoka i.e. make whole thing mechanical and the inner truth is lost.

Disciple:
Raman Maharshi was known to no one. It was Brunton who made him widely known.

Sri Aurobindo: It is a strange measure of success, people adopt in judging people by
the number
of disciples. Who was
great–Raman Maharshi who did his Sadhana in seclusion for years or Raman Maharshi
surrounded by all sorts of disciples? Success to be real must be spiritual. At
times, when some spiritual movement begins to
succeed then the real thing begins to be lost.

The talk turned to Ramanashram.

Sri Aurobindo: (related a story here) Mrs. K. went to see Maharshi and was seen
driving
mosquitoes at the time of
meditation. She complained to him about mosquito bites. The Maharshi told her
that if she couldn’t bear mosquito bites she couldn’t do yoga. Mrs. K. could
not understand the significance of the statement. She wanted spirituality
without mosquitoes!

There
are reports that those who stay there permanently are not all in agreement with
each other.

50

Do
you know that famous story about Maharshi “when being disgusted with the
Ashram and the
disciples,” he
was going away into the mountain. He was passing through a narrow path flanked
by
the hills. He came upon an old
woman sitting with her legs across the path. Maharshi begged her to draw her
legs but she would not. Then Maharshi in anger passed across her. She then
became very
angry and said “Why
are you so restless? Why can’t you sit in one place at Arunachala instead of
moving about, go back to your place and worship
Shiva there?” Her remarks struck him and he retraced his steps. After
going some distance he looked back and found that there was nobody.
Suddenly it struck him that it was the Divine
Mother herself who wanted him to remain at
Arunachala.

Of
course it was the Divine Mother who asked him to go back. Maharshi was intended
to lead this
sort of life. He has
nothing to do with what happens around him. He remains calm and detached.
The man is what he was. By the way, I am glad to
hear Maharshi shouting with the Indian Christian
(we all laughed with him); it means he also can become dynamic. The only
Ashram in which there



was
great unity, I heard, was Thakur Dayanand’s. There was a strong sense of unity
among them. I
wrote an article on the
“Avatar” in Karmayogin. Mahendra Dey, Dayanand’s disciple, seeing the
article wrote to me “he is the

Avatar”.
He was very enthusiastic about it. And when there was police firing and
arrests, Mahendra
Dey after his
imprisonment became changed and said that he was hypnotized by Dayananda.

Disciple: Why are the Gurus obliged to work with imperfect
and defective people like us? Here the
difficulty
seems to be more keen.

51

Sri Aurobindo: That has been a puzzle to me also. But it is so. Our case is a little
different. Our aim is to change the world, not universally, of course. Hence
every one here represents human
nature
with all its difficulties and capacities. That’s how your difficulties are
explained, (He said
looking at X).

26th December 1938.

Four disciples were seated on the carpet talking
in low whispers at about 5. 30 P. M. One of the
group broke into suppressed laughter in course of talk.

At 6. 30 P. M. we all assembled by the side of Sri
Aurobindo, He looked round and referring to the
laughter asked: “What was the divine descent about?”

Disciple:
X. had his usual outburst of laughter.

Sri Aurobindo: Oh, it was the descent of Vishnu’s ananda.

Disciple:
It is very peculiar how I break out into uncontrolled laughter so easily.
Formerly, I used
to weep at the
slightest provocation. I think because I live in the external consciousness
only I
laugh so easily. Is it not?

Sri Aurobindo: It is the reaction of the superficial vital which is touched easily by
simple, outward
things; there is a child in nature that bursts out like
that. It is the same as the Balabhava–the child-like
nature. The deeper vital being does not get so easily touched.

The
topic was changed at this point.

Disciple:
What is meant by self-offering? How to do it?

52

Sri Aurobindo: How to do it! One offers one’s vital, mind and heart, attachment,
passions, and
grows into the Divine
consciousness.

Disciple: What time is more propitious for
meditation,–day-time or night-time? I get more
concentrated at night.

Sri Aurobindo: It may be due to the calm and quiet atmosphere
and also because you are
accustomed
to it. Nights and early mornings are supposed to be the best for meditation.

We ask people to
have a fixed time for meditation, for, if they are habituated to it then the
response
comes at that time due to
Abhyas. Lele asked me to meditate twice but when he came to Calcutta

he heard that I did not do it. He did not give me
time to explain that my meditation was going on all the time. He simply said:
“the devil has caught you.”

Disciple:
Sometimes meditation is automatic.

Sri Aurobindo: At that time you must sit, otherwise you feel uneasy.

Disciple:
The other day I was having peace, and ananda, and I saw many visions. But I had
to go to
sleep, for I thought, if I
kept up at night I might fall ill. I saw the flower signifying sincerity in my
vision.

Sri Aurobindo: Sincerity means to lift all our movements
towards the Divine.
Disciple: That fear of falling ill by keeping awake, is it
not a mental fear?

Sri Aurobindo: The thing is, the physical being has got a
limit. The vital being can feel the energy,
peace, etc. but

53

the
physical cannot be taxed beyond its capacity. That is what happened to many
Sadhaks here.
They overworked till a
reaction took place. The force comes for your particular work, not to
increase the work and keep it for the other
purposes. If you go on overdoing it then the natural
reaction will come. There is a certain amount of
reasonableness even in spirituality.

Disciple:
At one time I also used to feel a lot of energy while I was working with the
Mother and I
was never fatigued even
working day and night, only one or two hours sleep was sufficient and I
would feel as fresh as ever.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. That is because you opened to the Energy.
About sleep, even ten minutes of
sleep
may be enough, but of course, it is not ordinary sleep but going within. If you
can draw the Force with equanimity and conserve it, these things can be done.
As I said many Sadhaks felt that
sort
of thing when we were dealing with the vital. But when the Sadhana came into
the physical
there was not that push
any more and people began to feel easily fatigued, lazy, and unwilling to
work. They began to complain about ill-health due
to overwork and were helped by the doctor. Do
you know the idea of “H?” He says people have come here not
for work but for meditation.

I
dare say if we had not come down into the physical and remained in the vital
and mental like
other Yogis without
trying to transform them then things would have been different.

(At this hour Mother came in and we meditated for
sometime. After she went away, our talk was
resumed. Someone remarked N. had a good meditation. He did not know
that Mother has gone.)

54

Sri Aurobindo: Good meditation?

Disciple:
How do you know?

Sri Aurobindo: By the inclination of your head, perhaps.

Disciple: I can’t say; I was having many incoherent dreams
and visions–that is all I can say,
perhaps
it was in the surface consciousness.



Sri Aurobindo: Surface consciousness of the inner vital being. Such things are very
common; of course, when one goes still deeper one does not see them. There is a
point between the surface
consciousness
and the deeper vital which is full of these fantasies and dreams. They are
apparently
incoherent. In the
physical a mouse turning into an elephant may have no meaning but it is not so
in the vital. They have no coherence of the
physical plane but they have their own coherence of the

vital
plane. But when one gets the clue one finds that everything is a linked whole.
That I have seen
many times in my own
case. It is this world from which Tagore’s painting came,–what Europeans call
the Goblin world.

Disciple:
Does Tagore see them before drawing them?

Sri Aurobindo: I do not think so. Some see them but do not draw
them. But they come to him.
Anybody
who has the least experience of these planes can at once say from where they
come.

Disciple:
But how is it that people think and he himself calls it great paintings?

Sri Aurobindo: Everybody calls it “great and
wonderful”, so he himself comes to think it so.
Then we began to talk about headache either due to
physical cause or resistance.

55

Disciple: I
have seen many times my headache start after Mother’s touch at Pranam.

Sri Aurobindo: That may be because you passed from one state of
consciousness to another.
Disciple: Unconsciously?

Sri Aurobindo: Why not? When from a state of concentration you mix yourself just after
the
Pranam you can easily pass to
another state. That is why Mother advises people to remain calm and
quiet for some time after Pranam or meditation.

Disciple: I felt once as if the head were suspended in the
air and that parts of body did not resist. Sri
Aurobindo:
That is separation of the mental consciousness.

Disciple:
Are you able to know what experiences Sadhaks are having, especially if they
are some
decisive ones?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t. But Mother knows. Whenever it is a question of consciousness
she can see
in the Sadhak whatever
changes are taking place. When she meditates (with the Sadhak) she can know
what line he is following, the line she indicates or the Sadhak’s own and
afterwards what
changes have been
brought in the consciousness.

Disciple:
And when the Sadhaka experiences something, is it imparted to you?

Sri Aurobindo: What is the use of giving our own things to them? Let them have their
own
growth. I may put in a Force for
people who are in habitual bad condition, people who are always
going in the wrong and try to work it out so that
the condition might improve. If the

56

Sadhak co-operates
then it is comparatively easy. Otherwise, if the Sadhak is passive then the
result takes a long time, it comes, goes again,
returns like that and ultimately the Force prevails. In

case
of people like “X.” we used to put in a strong Force then he became
lucid and then the whole
vital used
to rush up and catch hold of him. Whereas if the Sadhak actively participates
then it
takes only one-tenth of the
time.

27th December 1938.

Sri
Aurobindo himself opened the talk to-day by addressing X and said “I hear
D. going about in
his car with a
guard by his side, two cyclist policemen in front and back.” Then the talk
continued
regarding Pondicherry
politics, most of talk being by us. Then Sri Aurobindo remarked. “When I
see Pondicherry and Calcutta Corporation I begin
to wonder why I was so eager for democracy.
Pondicherry and Calcutta Corporation are the two object lessons which
can take away all
enthusiasm for
self-government.”

Disciple:
Was the Calcutta Corporation so bad before the Congress came there?

Sri Aurobindo: No. There was not so much scope for it,–at least we did not know of
such
scandals. It is the same thing
with other municipal Governments. In New York and Chicago the
whole machinery is corrupt. Sometimes the head of
the institution is like that. Sometimes a Mayor
comes up with the intention of cleaning out the whole, but one does not
know after cleaning which one was better. The Mayor of Chicago was a great
criminal but all judges and police-officers were
under his pay. In France also it is about the same thing. It

57

is
not surprising that people got disgusted with Democracy.

England is comparatively less corrupt. The
English are the only people who know how to work the
Parliamentary system. Parliamentary Government is
in their blood.

Disciple:
It seems that our old Indian system was the best for us. How could it succeed
so well?

Sri Aurobindo: The old Indian system grew out of life, it had room for everything and
every interest. There were monarchy, aristocracy, democracy. Every interest was
represented in the
Government. While
in Europe the Western System grew out of the mind. They are led by reason and
want to make everything cut and dried without any chance of freedom or
variation. If it is
democracy, then
democracy only. No room for anything else. They cannot be plastic.

India
is now trying to imitate the West. Parliamentary Government is not suited to
India. But we
always take up what the
west has thrown off. Sir Akabar wanted to try a new sort of Government with an
impartial authority at the head. There, in Hyderabad, the Hindu majority
complains that
though Mohammedens are
in minority they occupy most of the offices in the state. By Sir Akabar’s
method almost every interest would have been
represented in the Government and automatically
the Hindus would have come in, but because of their cry of responsible
Government the scheme
failed. They
have a fixed idea in the mind and want to fit everything to it. They can’t think
for
themselves and so take up what
the others are throwing off.

Disciple: What is your idea of an ideal Government for
India? It is possible in Hyderabad which
has a Nizam.

58

But
how to do the same in an Indian Constitution?

Sri Aurobindo: Sir Akabar’s is as good as any. My idea is like what Tagore once
wrote. There may
be one Rashtrapati
at the top with considerable powers so as to secure a continuity of policy and
an
Assembly representative of the
nation. The provinces will contribute to a Federation, united at the
top, leaving ample scope to local bodies to make
laws according to their local problems. Mussolini
started with a fundamental of the Indian System
but afterwards began bullying and bluffing other
nations for the sake of imperialism. If he had persisted in his original
idea, he would have been a
great
creator.

Disciple: Dr. Bhagwandas suggested that there should be
legislators above the age of 40,
completely
disinterested like the Rishis.

Sri Aurobindo: A chamber of Rishis! That would not be very promising. They will at
once begin
to quarrel. As they say;
Rishis in ancient times could guide kings because they were distributed
over various places.

Disciple:
His idea is of gathering all great men together.

Sri Aurobindo: And let them quarrel like Kilkeni cats. I suppose. (said laughing).

The Congress at the present stage–what is it but
a Fascist organization? Gandhi is the dictator like Stalin, I wan’t say like
Hitler. What Gandhi says they accept and even Working Committee follows
him. Then it goes to A. I. C. C. which adopts it
and then the Congress. There is no opportunity for
any difference of opinion except for Socialists
who are allowed to differ. Whatever resolutions they
pass are obligatory on all the

59

provinces
whether the resolutions suit the provinces or not. There is no room for any
other
independent opinion. Every
thing is fixed up before and the people are only allowed to talk over it
like Stalin’s Parliament. When we started the
movement we began with the idea of throwing out the
Congress oligarchy and open the whole organization
to the general mass.

Disciple:
Srinivas Ayyanger retired from Congress because of his difference with Gandhi.
He
objected to Gandhi’s giving the
movement a religious turn and bringing in religion in Politics.

Sri Aurobindo: He made Charka a religious article of faith and excluded all people
from Congress
Membership who could
not spin. How many believe in his gospel of Charka? Such a tremendous
waste of energy, just for the sake of a few annas
is most unreasonable.

Disciple:
He made that rule perhaps to enforce discipline?

Sri Aurobindo: Discipline is all right but once you centralize you go on centralizing.

Disciple: It failed in agricultural provinces and seems to
have succeeded in other places especially
where people had no occupation.

Disciple:
In Bengal it did not succeed.

Sri
Aurobindo:
In Bengal it did not.
It may be all right as a famine-relief measure. But when it
takes the form of an All-India programme it looks
absurd. If you form a programme that is suited to
the condition of the agricultural people it
sounds something reasonable. Give them education,
technical training and give them (Fundamentals or
Principles of) organization not on political but

on
business lines. But Gandhi does not want any

60

such
industrial organization and so comes in with his magical formula “spin,
spin, spin.” C. R. Das
and
others could act as a balance against him. It is all a fetish.

Denmark
and Ireland organized in the same way. Only now they are going to suffer
because other
nations are trying to
be self-sufficient. I don’t believe in that sort of self-sufficiency. For that
is
against the principles of life. It
is not possible for nations to be self-sufficient like that.

Disciple:
What do you think of Hindi being the common language? It seems to me English
has
occupied so much place that it
will be unwise and difficult to replace it.

Sri Aurobindo: English will be all right and even necessary if India is to be on an
international
state. In that case
English has to be the medium of expression, especially as English is now
replacing French as a world-language. But the
national spirit won’t allow it and also it s a foreign
language. At the same time Hindi can’t replace
English in the universities nor the provincial
languages. When the national spirit grows it is difficult to say what
will happen. In Ireland before
the
revolution they wanted to abolish English and adopt Gaelic but as time went on
and things settled themselves their enthusiasm waned and English came back.

Disciple: I do not understand why the Jews are being so
much persecuted by Hitler.
Disciple: I understand
that the Jews betrayed Germany during the war.

Sri Aurobindo: Nonsense, on the other hand they helped Germany
a great deal. It is because they
are
a clever

61

race
that others are jealous of them, for anything that is wrong you point to the
Jews! It is so much
more easy than
finding the real cause, or because people want something to strike and so the
popular cry, “The Jews the Jews”. You
remember I told you about the prophecy regarding the Jews
that when they will be persecuted and driven to
Jerusalem that the Golden age shall come?

It is the Jews that have built Germany’s
Commercial fleet and her navy. The contribution of Jews
towards the world’s progress in every branch is
remarkable.

But
this sort of dislike exists among other nations also e.g. the English do not like
the Scots,
because the Scottish have
beaten the English in commercial affairs. There was a famous story in
the Punch: two people asking themselves.
“Bill, who is that man?”, and Bill answered, “Let us strike at
him, he is a stranger.”

And
then in Bengal the West Bengal people used to call East Bengal people
“Bangale” and
composed a
satire “Bangale Manush nohe oe ekta jantu” At one time I used to wear
socks at all
times of the year. The
West Bengalis used to sneer at that saying, “I am a Bangale”; they thought
that they were the most civilized
people on earth. It is a legacy from the animal world. Just as dogs
of one street do not like dogs of another.

Disciple:
But things will improve, I hope?

Sri
Aurobindo:
If this goes, you may
be sure that the Golden Age is coming! All my opinions are

of course on the basis of the present conditions.
But the things would be quite different if the
Supermind came down.

Disciple: You are tempting us too much with your
Supermind. But will it really benefit the whole
of mankind?

62

Sri Aurobindo: It will exert a certain upward pull but in order that it may bring
about a
considerable change, that it
may be efficient, two hundred Sadhaks of the Ashram can’t be enough.
It must be thousands whose influence can spread
all over the world, who by actual test can prove that it is something superior
to the means hitherto employed.

Disciple: Will it have a power (corresponding to the
Universal Consciousness) over humanity?
Sri Aurobindo: We shall leave it to the Supermind to answer that question when it
comes.

Disciple: The materialist and scientist say that Yogis have
done nothing for human happiness.
Buddhas
and Avatars have come and gone but the sufferings of humanity are just the
same.

Sri Aurobindo: Did Avatar come to relieve the sufferings of
humanity? It was only Buddha who
showed
the way of release from suffering. But his path was to get away from the world
and enter
into Nirvana. Does mankind
follow him? And if they do not and cannot get rid of their suffering, it
is not Buddha’s fault!!

Disciple:
They say that by scientific inventions and medical discoveries they have been
able to
improve the condition of the
world. e.g. by cholera injections, smallpox vaccinations the death rate
is reduced.

Sri Aurobindo: And are they happy? Vaccination! Intellectual
people say that vaccinations have
done
more harm than good.

Disciple:
But that is the opinion of intellectuals and not of doctors.

63

Sri Aurobindo: Why? The intellectuals have studied the subject before they gave their
opinion.
They may have reduced
Cholera etc., but what about other things that they have brought in? About
suffering! Suffering cannot go as long as
ignorance remains. Even after the Supermind descends
the suffering will remain. If you choose to remain
in suffering how can it go?

Disciple:
They say that they can compel people to take injections even against their
will, can
spiritual force do that?
The Yogis have been busy with their own salvation while the world has
remained just the same.

Sri Aurobindo: Evolution has proceeded from matter through animal to physical man,
vital man,
mental man and spiritual
man. When mental man or spiritual man appears the others do not
disappear. So, the tiger and serpent do not
become man. In this upward growth of the human
consciousness you cannot say that Buddha, Christ etc. have played no
part.

I consider the
Supramental the culmination of the Spiritual man. When the Supramental becomes
established I expect that one will not be
required to flee from life. It is something dynamic that
changes life and nature. It will open the vital,
mental even the physical to the intuitive and

overmental
planes.

You
want comfort and happiness; in that case, Truth and Knowledge are of no value.

The
discoveries of modern science have outrun their own usefulness, the human
capacity to use
them. And the
scientists don’t know what to do with these discoveries. They have been used
for the
purposes of destruction. Now
they are trying to kill men by throwing germs of small-pox from aeroplanes;
they at least end the suffering by death but by bombing you mutilate for

64

life.
Politics, science, even socialism have not succeeded in finding a way out of
suffering. They
have killed people,
they kill each other and involve the state into a peril unless you say that
murders and massacres are necessary. From this
state of chaos and suffering there have been ways
of escape and people have been shown the way out.
You say they are not useful.

No.
no, all that is a superficial view of things. One has to consider the whole
civilization before one
can pass
opinion.

It is because Western Civilization is failing that
people like A. Huxley are drawn to Yoga.
December 28, 1938.

At
about 5.30 P.M. “X” burst into a peal of laughter to which Sri
Aurobindo reacted by asking:
“What
is that dynamic explosion?” There was no reply, only a silence of
suppression. But at 6.30
P.M. the
laughter was repeated and instead of Sri Aurobindo asking anything X himself
complained to Sri Aurobindo that “Y”
was making him laugh. The reply was: “Take care that he
may not make you go off like a firework!”

All assembled by the side of the cot and there was
complete quiet. One member yawned and
another
yawned in response. The result was a subdued bubble of laughter.

Sri
Aurobindo could hardly fail to notice it. He asked: “What is the
joke?”

Disciple:
“X” is mocking at my yawning.

65

Sri Aurobindo: He does not know that yawning may be a fatal symptom.

There was reference to a letter from another
Sadhak relating his symptom of yawning at night.
Disciple: What medicine has been given to him for his
perennial sickness?

Disciple:
That is a secret.

Sri Aurobindo: That reminds me of the science of Augurs in Greece. There used to be Government Augurs who used to be called in to
interpret omens and signs; and from that a college
of Augurs came into existence. There–in the
college the professors used to be quite grave and serious,–they gave lectures
on Augury with grave faces; when afterwards they met together they used to
laugh among themselves.

By the way, we have
got mutilated news to-day; they have dropped two important words. Instead
of saying “the Italians are marching”
(into Djibuti). If the Italians march into Djibuti the French can

march
into Tripoli as counter-attack.

Disciple: The French can also organize the Abysinians
against Italy. Sri Aurobindo: There
won’t be time for that.

Disciple:
The Italians do not seem to be good soldiers.

Sri Aurobindo: No, I will be greatly surprised if they can
defeat the French. In that case Mussolini
must have changed the Italian character tremendously.

Disciple:
They had a hard time in Abyssinia.

66

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. It was by their superior air-bombs, mustard-gas poisoning that
they
succeeded.

Disciple:
But they will be aided by the Germans.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, Italy can’t do without Germany.

Disciple:
Fisher (the historian) says that German army in the last war was the greatest
and the best
army ever organized in
the world.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. They are the most organized and able soldiers in the world except
the
Japanese. But the Japanese are
numerically less and financially poorer.

Even so during the last
war the Germans could not throw up any remarkable military genius like
Foch. If Foch had been the Commander-in-chief before, the war would have ended
much earlier.

The Balkans and the Turks are also good fighters. Disciple: What about the Sikhs and the Gurkhas? Sri Aurobindo: They are unsurpassed but the war depends not on
fighters but on generals.

Disciple:
The British consul here says that the Chinese are no good as soldiers and the
Russians are
good in defensive
warfare. The Germans are trying to expand in the Ukraine. After that Hitler
might come to central Europe.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. But that will at once combine Russia,
Poland, Rumania and Yugoslavia.
These
small minor powers will be afraid of their own safety.

Disciple:
I don’t understand why Germany joins Italy in attacking France. According to
European
astrology Hitler’s stars are
with him till Dec. 1936.

67

Sri Aurobindo: Why! Hitler himself has said in his “Mein Kemp” that Germany
is not safe without
the destruction
of France. And France says the same thing about Germany. They have chosen this
time, perhaps, because they think that France has
been weakened by the general strike. But they
lost sight of the fact that the invasion will bring the whole France
to-gether.



Disciple: I read in the paper to-day that a group of
people in England are shouting that America
belongs to them–as a counter move to Italian claims.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they can claim Germany, and also Denmark
and Italy too for that matter.
Disciple: The way these
people are preparing seems that war is inevitable.

Sri Aurobindo: But we thought they would not do anything till early next year. They
are trying to strike now, perhaps, because they think that France has been
divided by the General strike. But war will bring the whole nation together at
once. In any case, we find that the Germans are enjoying
Christmas.

Disciple:
England, most probably, will have to ally herself with France.

Sri Aurobindo: You have seen what Chamberlain has said? “England is not obliged
to help France in case of war with Italy”. But if Italy combines with
Germany one can’t say.

Disciple: In case there is a general war India will have
an opportunity for independence.
Sri Aurobindo: How?

68

Disciple: She will refuse to co-operate. I think the
Congress Ministries were due to the threat of
war in Europe.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes It was in order to conciliate the Indians.

29th December 1938.

To-day a question of a doctor (disciple) was
conveyed by one of the disciples. Disciple:
What is the connection between the causal body and the psychic being?

Sri Aurobindo: The psychic being is what is called Chaitya Purusha in the heart,
while the Causal
body is at present
Superconscious. They are not the same.

Disciple:
It is the Superconscious existence that later on is called “Self” in
Vedanta. According to
some people
Raman Maharshi has realized the Self.

Sri Aurobindo: From what Brunton (Paul) has written it does not
seem so. He speaks of the “voice
in
the heart” that would mean the Psychic Being.

At this point Mother came and asked: “What
have you been speaking about?”
Sri Aurobindo: “X” has asked a question which does not hang together. Then he repeated the question.

Disciple: I
have heard about Raman Maharshi’s experience from a direct disciple of his:
“One day the heart centre opened and I began to hear “I”,
“I” and everywhere I saw this “I”.

69

Disciple:
Different spiritual persons say different things. How to find out which is the
highest? Our



choice
is not necessarily that of the highest.

Mother:
Each one goes to the limit of his consciousness. I have met many persons in
Europe, India
and Japan practicing yoga under different masters. Each
claimed that his realization was the highest,
he was quite sure about it and also quite satisfied with his condition, and yet
each one was
standing at a different
place in consciousness and saying that he has attained the highest.

Disciple:
But one can know what they mean by some criterion.

Mother:
By what criterion? If you ask them they say “it is something wonderful but
can’t be
described by the mind.”
I was with Tagore in Japan. He claimed to have reached the peace of
Nirvana and he was beaming with joy. I thought:
“here is a man who claims to have got the peace
and reached Nirvana. Let us see.” I asked him
to meditate with me and I followed him in
meditation and found that he had reached just behind the vital and the
mind: a sort of emptiness. I
waited
and waited to see if he would go beyond; I wanted to follow him. But he would
not go further. I found that he was supremely satisfied and believed that he
had entered Nirvana.

Disciple:
But there is a fundamental realization of some kind?

Mother: That is to say, there is a fundamental truth of
consciousness. But that is not so easy to
reach.

Disciple:
How to choose a master, then? We must know whom to choose.

70

Disciple: How are you going to know with your mind where
he has reached?
Disciple: Is not our choice decided by the psychic being in
us?

Mother:
That is another question. First you must realize about the limit of
consciousness and the
difference of
the place where people stand.

The
choice is mostly in answer to your need and it is governed by your inner
necessity. Sometimes,
the choice is
made by instinct by which the animals find the right place for their food.
Only, in the
human being it acts
from within. If you allow your mind to discuss and argue then the instinct
becomes veiled. When you have made the choice the
mind naturally wants to believe that it is the
highest you have chosen. But that is subjective.

Disciple:
If the choice is right one feels happiness and satisfaction.

Mother:
Satisfaction? One can’t depend upon feelings and sensations. for, very often
they
misguide. Satisfaction is quite
a different thing. There are people who are not satisfied in the best
conditions, while in the worst conditions some are
quite satisfied.

Look
at the people in the world around; they are very happy with their conditions.
Again, there are
people whose
satisfaction depends upon their liver–a brutally materialistic state. Also
there are people who suffer extremely and yet their inmost being knows that
there is the path for reaching
the goal.

Disciple:
There are certain signs given by the Shashtras by which one can judge.



Sri Aurobindo: What Shashtras? One can’t believe in all that is
said in the Shashtras.

Mother: Besides, that may be all right for Indians; what
about the Europeans? You can’t say that
they have not realized any truth?

Then the Mother took her leave and went for
meditation. There was a pause of silence for some
time. Then Sri Aurobindo asked: “What are the
Laxanas–signs–you spoke of?”

Disciple:
They are common and found everywhere. They are given in the Gita: Equality,
Love for
others, even-mindedness etc.

Sri Aurobindo: They are, rather, conditions for realization. All experiences are true
and have their
place. But because one
is true one can’t say that the other is false. Truth is infinite. There are so
many ways to come to the Truth. The wider you become the higher you go. The
more you find,
there is still more
and more. For instance, Maharshi (Raman) has his experience of “I”
but when I
had the Nirvan-experience
I could not think of an “I”;–however much I tried I could not think
of
any “I”. The world simply
got displaced. One can’t speak of it as “I”. It is either
“He” or “That”.
That
I call Laya. Realization of the Self is all right; Laya was a part of a
realization which is much
more
comprehensive.

When I do not accept the Maya-Vada it is not that
I have not realized the Truth (behind it) or, that I don’t know “the One
in All” and “All in the One”,–but because I have other
realizations which are
equally strong
and which cannot be shut out. The Maharshi is right and everybody is also
right.

72

When
the mind tries to understand these things, it takes up fragments and treats
them as wholes and makes unreal distinctions. They speak of Nirguna as the
fundamental (experience) and Saguna as
derivative
or secondary. But what does the Upanishad mean by “Ananta Nirguna”
and “Ananta
Saguna”? They
can’t be thought of as different. When you think of Impersonality as the
fundamental Truth and Personality as something
imposed upon it and therefore secondary, you cut
across with your mind something which is beyond both. Or, is it not that
Personality is the chief
thing and
Impersonality is only one side, or one condition of Personality? No.
Personality and
Impersonality are
aspects of a thing which is indivisible. Shanker is right and so is Nimbarka.
Only,
when they state their Truth in
mental terms there is a tremendous confusion. Shanker says “It is
Anirvachaniya–indescribable by speech–and
“All is One.” Nimbarka says: There is Duality and
Unity: while Madhava says: “Duality is
true.”

The
Upanishads speak of “Him by knowing whom all is known.” What does it
mean? That Vignana
[@insert Sanskrit for Vignana] is not the fundamental
realization of the One. It means the knowledge
of the principles of the Divine Being; what Krishna (in the Gita) speaks of
“Tattvatah”
[@insert
Sanskrit for Tattvatah]: One cannot know the complete Divine except in the
Supermind.
That is why Krishna said
that one who knows him in the “true principles of his being” is rare,
“Kashchit”. The Upanishads
also speak of the Brahman as Chatushpada “having four legs, or
aspects”. It does not merely state “All
is the Brahman” and it is over. The realization of the Self is not all.
There are many things beyond that. The Divine Guide within me urged me to proceed,
adding experience after experience,
reaching

73

higher and higher,
stopping at none as final, till I arrived at the glimpses of the Supermind.
There I

found
the Truth indivisible and there everything takes its proper place. There,
Nirguna and
Saguna-Impersonality and
Personality don’t exist. They are all aspects of One Truth which is
indivisible.

In
the Overmind stage knowledge begins to rush in upon you from all sides and you
see the objects
from all points of
view and each thing from all points. All of them tend to get related to each
other
and there the Cosmic
Consciousness is not merely in its static aspect but also in its dynamic
reality:
it is the expression of
something Above. When you become Cosmic even though you speak of your
self as “I” it is not the
“I,”–the ego, the “I-ness” disappears and the mental,
vital and the physical
appear as
representatives of that Consciousness. Ramakrishna speaks of that state as the
form of
ego left for action. When
you reach the Supermind you become not only Cosmic but something beyond the
Universe,–Transcendental, and there is indivisibility of unity and
individuality. There,
the Cosmic and
the Individual all co-exist.

The
same principle works out in science. The scientists at one time reduced all
multiplicity of
elements to Ether
and described it in the most contradictory terms. Now they have found the
Electrons as the basis of Matter. By difference of position and number of
electrons you get the
whole
multiplicity of objects. There also you find the One that is Many, and yet is
not two different
things. Both the
One and the Many are true and through both you have to go to the Truth.

When you come to politics, democracy, plutocracy,
monarchy etc. all have truth, even Hitler and
Mussolini stand for some truth.

74

This is a very big yoga,–one has to travel–I
think “X” will not take all that trouble–(Sri Aurobindo
said referring to a disciple.)

Disciple:
Never, Sir. I have come here because I can’t take so much trouble.

Sri Aurobindo: You are not called upon to do it. Even for me it
would have been impossible if I
had
to do it myself; but at a certain stage heavens opened and the thing was done
for me.

The
topic seemed to have ended. But “X” prolonged by saying: my friend
“K” asked Maharshi if
attainment
of immortality was possible. But the Maharshi would not say anything by way of
reply.
But “K” persisted
then he said; “It is possible by Divine Grace.”

Sri Aurobindo: That is hardly an answer. Everything is possible by Divine Grace. There
are two
things about immortality:
one, the conquest of death. It does not however mean that one would
never die. It means leaving the body at will.
Second, it includes the power to change or renew the
body. There is no sense in keeping the same body
for years; that would be a terrible bondage. That
is why death is necessary in order that one can
take another body and have a fresh growth. You know Dasharath lived for sixty
thousand years. He did not know what to do with such a long life and began at
the end producing children! Have you read Shaw’s “Back to
Methuselah?” It shows
how silly
an intellectual can become. And what a ridiculous farce he has made of Joan of
Arc? He
speaks of her visions as
projections of her own mental ideas and decisions. Shaw is all right when
he speaks of England, Ireland and Society; but he
can’t do anything constructive. There he fails
miserably.

75



These
intellectuals like Russell when they talk of something beyond their scope they
cut such a
poor figure: you can see
what he writes about the “introvert.” They can’t tolerate emptiness
or
cessation of thought and breaking
away from outside interests! If you ask them to stop their
thoughts they refuse to accept it and at once come
back from emptiness. And yet it is through
emptiness one has to pass beyond.

*

76

JANUARY, 1939

1-1-1939

Disciple:
How can one succeed in meditation?

Sri Aurobindo: By quietude of the mind. Above the Mind there is not only the Infinite
in itself but
infinite sea of peace,
joy, light, power etc.–above the head. The golden lid–Hiranmaya
patra–intervenes between that which is above Mind
and what is below. Once one can break that lid
those elements can come down at any time one wills, and for that,
quietude is necessary. There are
people
who get those things without quietude, but it is very difficult.

Disciple:
It is said that there is also a veil in the heart, is it true?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, a veil or a wall, if you like. The vital
with its surface consciousness, the
emotional
with its disturbances and veils and one has to break through these and get to
what is
behind them. There, one
finds the heart. In some people the higher force works behind the veil
because it would meet with many obstacles if it worked
in front; it builds or breaks whatever is
necessary till one day the veil is withdrawn and one finds oneself in
the Infinite.

77

Disciple:
Does the Higher Force work all the time, even when there is no aspiration in
the
individual.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. In those who have the inner urge, the intermittent action of
aspiration itself
may be due to the
action of the Higher Force from behind.

Disciple:
We want to know how to get the infinite peace, etc.

Sri Aurobindo: First, to want only that. It is difficult, is it not? In that case you
have to wait; yoga
demands patience.
The old yogas say that one has to wait twelve years to get any experience at
all.
After that period one can
complain; but you said that you had many experiences. So, it is not so
bad.

Disciple: Yes. I told you that meditation used to come to
me at my place spontaneously,–at any time and I had to sit down and meditate.
Sometimes, it used to come to me while I was just going
to my office and the experience of peace etc.
used to last for some days. But sometimes for a long
period nothing happens. One should get some
experience at least once in a fortnight.

Disciple:
Sometimes I feel a pull on the head upwards. What is it due to?

Sri
Aurobindo:
Of course, it is not
in the physical head but in the subtle body, the Mind trying to

ascend towards the Higher
Consciousness.

Disciple: If one dreams or sees visions of seas, hills,
etc.,–what do they mean?

Sri Aurobindo: These are symbols; the sea of energy, the hill
of the Being with its different planes
and
parts,–the Spirit at the summit. These visions are quite common,–one sees
them as the mind
and the heart
expands.

78

Disciple: I felt at one time that my head was at the
Mother’s feet. What is it, Sir!

Sri Aurobindo: It is the experience of the psychic being. So,
you had the psychic experience.

Disciple: I told you how I had it and lost it through fear
that I was dying. But I could not recognize
this experience as psychic (Laughter).

Sri Aurobindo: It is this “I” that comes in the way.
One must forget it and experience as if it were
happening to somebody else. If one could do that it would be a great
conquest. When I had the Nirvana experience I forgot myself completely. I was a
sort of nobody.

What is the use of your being Mr.
so and so, son of so and so? If your “I” had died it would have
been a glorious death.

Disciple: What happens when the human consciousness is
replaced by the Divine Consciousness?

Sri Aurobindo: One feels perpetual calm, perpetual
strength,–one is aware of Infinity, lives not
only in Infinity but in Eternity. One feels the immortality and does not
care about the death of the
body, and
one has the consciousness of the One in all. Everything becomes the
manifestation of the
Brahman. For instance, as I look around the room I
see everything as the Brahman–it is not thinking,
it is a concrete experience,–even the wall, the book is Brahman. I see you not
as X. but as
a divine being in the
Divine. It is a wonderful experience.

79

2nd January 1939

Disciple: I think the Mother is testing me.

Mother: That is not the habit here. It is the play of
the forces, or rather the play of adverse forces,
that tries to test the Sadhak. If you refuse to
listen to them or remain firm, then they withdraw.
People here have plenty of difficulties already.
Why, add new ones? To say that we purposely test
them is not true. We never do it, never.

Mother came in for meditation and
went away early at 6-45. But she did not go to the evening
meditation before nearly 7-25 or 7-30.

Disciple: How far is it desirable for the Ashram to be
self-sufficient? Sri Aurobindo:
Self-sufficient in what way?

Disciple: In meeting the
needs of the daily life, say for instance, preparing our own cloth here; my
friend who has come from Bombay wants that we
should introduce spindles and looms to prepare
our clothes. Whether and how far such self-sufficiency is desirable in
Ashram like ours?



Sri Aurobindo: It is not a question of how far it is desirable,
it is also a question of how far it is
practicable?
No objection to spinning or weaving. How would “N” like to go on
spinning?

Disciple:
I am already spinning away.

Sri Aurobindo: There are all sorts of mental ideas, or rather mental formations which
can be
carried out and which are
being carried out at the other places but this Ashram is not the fit place for
carrying them out.

80

Disciple:
In what way it is not fit?

Sri Aurobindo: There are many difficulties here.

They all point out to institutions like Dayalbagh.
In that case you have to direct all your energies in that channel (leaving the
Sadhana on one side).

In
other organizations they impose discipline and obedience from outside by rule
of force. There
people are obliged to
take their orders from some one.

But here we don’t impose such discipline, (from
outside) and therefore you can hardly get people to
work together. It is because of their ego and
their idea of mental independence. Even if you want to
do that kind of work there are two things you
must guard against.

1.   
The tendency
to degenerate into mere mechanical and commercial activity.

2.    You have to guard against ambition. There is a
natural tendency to cut a figure before the world,
to hold that the Ashram and the Ashramites are
some thing great, that must go.

Lastly
there is health–unless the doctor promises to homeopathise them (Sadhaks) into
health.

Work as a part of Sadhana is all right, but work
as a part of spiritual creation we cannot take up
unless the inner difficulties are overcome. It is
not that we do not want to do it but here it is not
mental-construction that we want but spiritual
creation. It is here left to the Mother’s intuition.
Even then there are difficulties.

Disciple:
What is the difference between peace and silence?

81

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean?

Disciple:
Is peace included in silence or vice versa?

Sri Aurobindo: If you have silence you have peace, but the opposite is not true. That
is to say, you
may have peace but not
silence.

Disciple:
Is silence mere emptiness?

Sri Aurobindo: No. Not necessarily. It may be full of the
positive presence of the Divine.
Disciple:
Is it not a dull and dry state?



Sri Aurobindo: No. Not necessarily. As I said, it can be full of the presence of the
Divine or it

may
be Mental peace–accompanied by a sense of emptiness which may be dull to the
mind but it is
the emptiness for
something higher to come in and fill it.

Disciple:
In that emptiness–Shunyam–there is a great release. Is it not?

Sri Aurobindo: Oh yes. It is a very pleasant state. These people, like Russell, don’t
understand
what this emptiness
means. They try to go in and immediately they find themselves empty. They do
not like it. They think that all that comes into the consciousness comes from
outside. They have no
idea that there
are inner things with which the being can be filled.

Disciple:
But you said in one of your letters to “D” that one must be prepared
to pass through the
period of
dryness.

Sri Aurobindo: There is an experience of neutral peace of mind
which may be dry and dull to the
ordinary
man.

82

Disciple:
Can one act when one has the silence?

Sri Aurobindo: Certainly; why not? When I talk of silence I mean inner silence. It is
perfectly
possible to hear and do all
sorts of things and retain that inner silence.

Disciple:
Is the silence static and dynamic both?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not silence that is dynamic–but you can become dynamic having
that inner
silence. You can also
remain without doing anything. It depends.

People who are dynamic can’t remain without doing
something. They do not realize that if they
have the inner silence the effectivity of their work is increased a
hundred fold.

Some Maraths came when I came to Pondicherry,
inquired what I was doing: when he heard I was
doing “nothing”, he said “it is a great thing if one can
do it. It is a capacity to do nothing”!

Disciple:
There is one gentleman who actually sealed up his lips with something so that
he may not be able to speak.

Sri Aurobindo: That is what is called Asuric Tapasya: Titanic
askasis.
Disciple: Can one gain something by Asuric Tapasya?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes; all Tapasya can give you something.

Physical and vital tapasya can give you
something. It can give you physical and vital control,
though that is more a Nigraha–repressed
control–rather than anything else.

Disciple:
Is it not a part of Divine realization–? What is Divine realization?

83

Sri
Aurobindo:
Experience of peace
and bliss is a spiritual realization. If one gains control of the
vital being by the influence of the Self–that is
a divine realization.

Disciple: But one can have the necessary control by the
mind–rather than try such physical and
outward control.

Sri Aurobindo: These things may be steps to the Divine; for
example Hatha Yoga and Raja Yoga.
Disciple:
Our friend “X”, finds that Yogis have defects.

Sri Aurobindo: It is not the defects that are important but
whatever leads to the upward growth, to
the Divine, adding something to his stature, is a gain to the human
progress towards the Light. No
upward
progress is to be despised.

*

3rd
January 1939

There was hearty laugh over the thesis of a
Marathi writer with Socialistic tendencies who tried to
prove that Swami Ramdas was a socialist!

Disciple: Some of the Sadhaks seem to become too
delicate,–a small cut or even smell of burning
ghee upsets them. Sometimes other people who cannot understand this say
this is mere fainting.

Sri Aurobindo: They used to brand the body with hot iron to see if the man was in
trance or not!
They thought perhaps
that it might be only deep trance and not Nirvikalpa Samadhi! (Laughter)

Disciple: Can it be that the man would not feel anything? 84

Sri Aurobindo: There are cases of people who, when under hypnotic influence, are
unaffected by
pins being introduced
into their bodies. And also there are cases where the man is made to stretch
out his hand and even two or three strong people
cannot bend it. There are also cases in which
sugar tastes bitter under hypnotic influence. And the question is
whether sweetness or any other
property
is in the subject–as in the sense of beauty–or in the object.

Disciple:
What is that capacity due to?

Sri Aurobindo: There are no physical causes, these phenomena are due to supraphysical
causes
and there the laws of the
physical do not apply.

Disciple:
But then what is sweetness due to–in the case of sugar?

Sri Aurobindo: The question is whether experience of sweetness is a common reaction of
all
human beings, or has the object
anything in it corresponding to the experience of sweetness.

Disciple: But something of the property of the object
persists, like the effect of medicine in
homeopathic doses,–the smallest quantity retains the quality.

Disciple:
But what is your conclusion, Sir?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know.

At
this point the Mother came and the subject matter was reported to her.

Mother: I do not believe that the phenomena were due to
hypnotism. In hypnotism you impose

control
on another man, the subject, i.e., your will replaces his will.

85

But
I know what I have seen. In most cases I have seen that both the hypnotizer and
the hypnotized lend themselves unconsciously to the influence of occult forces.
Anything that takes place in that
condition
is due to the influence of those forces. I know one case,–an extraordinary
case, of
exteriorization in which
almost the material,–the vital and the vital-material, form of the subject
was separated from the body of the hypnotized
person. If the hypnotizer controls the man and if he
has good will it may do the “subject” no
harm. But in most cases he keeps himself aloof to direct
the person and cannot take charge of the body and
in the interval it is some other forces that take
possession of the body.

It
is dangerous to do these things except under guidance, or in the presence of
somebody who
knows these things. You
find people speaking languages in that unconscious condition which they
do not know at all. It is because some of their
being in the past, or subconsciously, knows the
language and in that state, a contact is established between the part of
the subconscient and the man
speaks
the language. It is not as if the hypnotist willed that: “the man shall
speak a particular
language”
and the man begins to speak that language even though there may be no part in
him that
knew the language. Such a
thing is impossible. Only, if there is a part that knows and if one can
establish a contact then he can speak that language.

Disciple:
Is this knowledge indispensable for yoga?

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. It is useful for knowledge of the physical and also
for mastery
over death, it is
essential.

There
is an ancient prophesy in the Jewish Cabala

86

that
the kingdom of God would be established in humanity when the man will come who
would
have the power to die and come
back, i.e. take up his body again,–after death. It is essential to
know what is death if you want to conquer it. That
shows that the ancients foresaw the need for the
knowledge and also that of transformation of the physical.

It is curious how some people can easily separate
their subtle bodies from the physical, say in three
or four days even. They go out of the body and see
their body lying in front of them, while in other
cases they do not succeed.

This knowledge is also useful in
curing diseases. For instance, it is perfectly easy to prevent diseases and to cure them if you have the knowledge
of these planes. There is what is called “the
nervous envelope”, which is an intermediary
between the subtle and the gross body. It is that which
acts as a sheath protecting you against all
attacks of diseases. If the nervous envelope is intact no
disease can come to you. In most people, with
aging, this envelope wears out and then gradually
the forces are able to penetrate and pierce it.
That is one of the causes of death.

Disciple:
Can this nervous envelope be seen in the patient?

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes; and if you can
see what is necessary you can put it in. In order to keep it in
tact you must have quiet, a balanced life, rest,
etc. People generally spoil it by excitement and other
irregularities.

In
the case of exteriorization done by the Tibetans, a thin thread is maintained
when one leaves the
body

87

and
if that is snapped the man may not be able to return to his body.

Disciple: There are cases of Tibetans who expose themselves
to ice without any bad reactions and also there was report of the messenger who
practically flies throughout Tibet carrying the tidings of
the lama.

Sri Aurobindo: These are known phenomena.

Disciple: There are so many miracles reported about Sj.
Bijoy Goswami. Do you think they are all
true?

Sri Aurobindo: I have no personal knowledge of them. But I
believe most of the miracles
attributed
to Bijoy Goswami are more possible with the subtle than with the physical body.

Sri Aurobindo then recounted the story of how
Mother was once on the point of death in Algeria
when she was practicing the yoga with Theon and his wife both of them
great occultists. Madame
Theon
particularly was a remarkable woman.

The Mother exteriorized and visited Paris and met
her friends. The exteriorization was sufficiently
material to enable her to write on a piece of
paper with pencil. The Tibetans are more familiar with
occultism than with spirituality.

The Europeans are more taken up with the occult
things. They either believe everything or nothing. That explains their
attraction for Tibet, Bhutan and other places of occult atmosphere. Now-a-days
stories and novels are being written with these
themes. Japanese Zen Buddhism, and also Chinese
Laotze have also attracted their attention.

88

I
also wrote some stories but they are lost; the white ants have finished them
and with them has
perished my future
as a story-teller. It is a pity that the translation of Megh Duta which I did
is lost. It was well done. Most of my stories were occult.

4th
January 1939.

Disciple:
X’s expression showed the usual gesture which to the company present indicated
the
coming of a question.

Disciple: What is the effect of fasting on yoga? Sri Aurobindo: On what?

Disciple:
The effect of fasting on yoga.

Sri Aurobindo: Oh, on yoga? It gives a sort of excitement or an
impetus to the vital being but the
general
effect does not seem to be sound or healthy.

I fasted twice: once in
Alipore jail for ten days and another time in Pondicherry for twenty-three

days.
At Alipore I was in full yogic activities and I was not taking my food, and was
throwing it
away in the bucket. Of
course, the Superintendent did not know it, only two warders knew about it
and they informed others saying: “The
gentleman must be ill; he will not live long”. Though my
physical strength was diminishing I was able to
raise a pail of water above my head which I could not do ordinarily.

At
Pondicherry while fasting I was in full mental and vital vigour. I was even
walking eight hours a
day and not
feeling tired at all, and when I broke the fast I did not begin slowly but with
the usual
normal food.

89

Disciple:
How is it possible to have such energy without food?

Sri Aurobindo: One draws the energy from the vital plane
instead of depending upon physical
substance.
Once in Calcutta I lived for a long time on rice and banana. It is a very good
food.

Disciple:
The trouble is that one can’t draw conclusion from your case.

Sri Aurobindo: At best one can draw the conclusion that it can be done. Once R. C.
Dutt called me
to dinner and was
surprised to find that I was taking only vegetarian diet; while he said he
could
not live without meat. With
the vegetarian diet I was feeling light and pure. It is only a belief that
one can’t do without meat; it is a question of
habit.

Disciple:
Can fasting be a cure for diseases also?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if you know the process. The Europeans sometimes fast for that
purpose but
in their case it is the
mental idea that works. You start with the idea of being well or ill, and it
happens accordingly.

Disciple:
Can neurasthenia be thrown off like that?

Sri Aurobindo: In the case of neurasthenic and hysteric persons
the nervous envelope is damaged.
Disciple: Then
it is the question of the nervous sheath.

Sri Aurobindo: All the diseases come from outside. The force of the disease pierces,
what the
Mother calls, “the
nervous envelope” and then enters the physical body. If one is conscious
of the
nervous envelope,–the subtle

90

nervous
sheath, then the disease can be thrown away before it enters the physical body,
as one
throws away the thoughts
before they enter the mind.

Disciple: “X” told us once that she used to have
the headache which was just above the head and it was very severe. We laughed
at it because we could not believe that head-ache could be above the
head.

Sri Aurobindo: How do you know there can’t be such a head-ache? If the consciousness
can be
lifted above the head and
remain there why not the head-ache?

The body is a mere mass
of responsive vibrations; everything comes from outside and finds a

response
in the body.

Disciple:
If everything comes from outside then what are we? What belongs to us?

Sri Aurobindo: In one sense nothing belongs to you. The Physical is made up, one can
say, of
various predispositions,
energies of the past, and what you have acquired in this life. These are
there ready to act under favourable conditions,
under the pressure of nature. It is Universal Nature
that gives the sense of “I” or “I
am doing everything”. This “I” and ‘mine’ have no meaning except
in another sense.

Disciple: The other day I could not understand what you
said about fundamental personality. What
is the truth behind personality?

Sri Aurobindo: There are two things: Personality and the Person, which are not the
same. The true
person is the eternal
Divine Purusha assuming many personalities and

91

it
is thrown in Time as the Cosmic and the Individual for a particular purpose,
use or work. This
true Person is all
the time conscious of its identity with the Cosmic. That is why liberation is
possible.

Disciple:
Is Cosmic liberation static or dynamic?

Sri Aurobindo: It is either, or both. In the static aspect one
realizes the pure Self as the Infinite, One, without movement, action or
quality.

In
the dynamic liberation, it depends upon where and how you experience the unity.
If it is in the mind you feel your mind as one with the Cosmic Mind; in that
case your own mind does not exist.
If
you feel the unity in the vital, then your vital being becomes a part of the
cosmic vital, one with
cosmic life.
You can experience the Unity on the physical plane; then you feel your body as
a
speck of Universal Matter. Or, the
identity can be above the Mind, by breaking open the lid that divides the Mind
from the Infinite. Just as there is a wall that separates the psychic being
from the
outer nature, so also there
is a wall above the head. You break the wall or, what is called the lid,
and you feel yourself as the Infinite, and your
individual self in the Infinite. That opening can be either vertical or
horizontal. This realization makes dynamic liberation possible,–not merely a
liberation of Laya.

Disciple:
Is it true that illness comes from Sadhana?

Sri Aurobindo: From Sadhana? Not necessarily.

Disciple: I think he means that illness may come in the
course of Sadhana for purification.
Sri Aurobindo: That is a different thing. It can be a circumstance in the sadhana.

92

Disciple: When I was a new-comer here and used to have
physical trouble, people said it was due to Sadhana and so I used to hide it
from you lest you should stop the use of your Force.

Disciple: Some Sufis and Bhaktas, devotees, take illness
and other troubles as gifts from the
Beloved,–the
Divine. So, can one say that everything comes from the Divine?

Sri Aurobindo: They are right in a way. They take everything as
coming from the Divine and it is a very good attitude if one can truly take it.
Whatever happens is with the sanction of the Supreme. If you neglect the chain
of intermediate causes there is a Superior Cause to everything.

Disciple: If a thing happens due to our negligence, can we
say that it happened by the Divine’s
sanction?

Sri Aurobindo: I say, “neglecting the intermediate causes.”

Disciple: Would there not be some danger in that attitude?
We may shirk our responsibilities and lay it on the Divine.

Sri Aurobindo: I said about the Bhakta–the Devotee, not about
everybody. For the Bhakta what
happens
is the best and he takes it in that light.

For
the Yogi who has to conquer these things they will come, otherwise there would
be nothing to
overcome. It would be
no real conquest at all. One can always feel the difficulties as opportunities,
and in one sense one can say that whatever happens is for the best.
Hostile forces also are recognized as
hostile, but from another standpoint they become the Divine power throwing out
attacks for the work to be done. Ultimately all
powers are from

93

the
Divine, they assist in the work. They throw up difficulties to test the
strength. It is the Divine
that has
created the opposition and it is the Divine who sends you the defeat so that
you may
conquer the difficulties
hereafter. This is necessary also to counter the ego’s sense of responsibility.
At one time I experienced the hostile forces as the gods trying to test my
strength. You have to act
not for
success but for the sake of the Divine, though it does not mean that you must
not work for
success. Arjuna
complains to Sri Krishna in the Gita that he speaks in “double
words”: saying “do not be eager for the result” but at the same
time he said “fight and conquer.”

Disciple:
There was a letter from our friend “X” in which he has tried to show
that the Gita is a
book on psychoanalysis
and that Sri Krishna was a great psycho-analyst! He psycho-analyzed
Arjuna and worked out his complexes. He was very
much perturbed at your denunciation of
Freud’s
psycho-analysis in the ‘Basis of Yoga.’ You have run down the greatest
discovery of the
modern times.

Sri Aurobindo: Psycho-analysis means that the subconscient is there in man and it
influences the
consciousness. It
means to say that if you suppress anything it goes down into your being and
comes up in queer and abnormal forms.

Disciple:
What, according to them, is this subconscient?

Sri Aurobindo: They say it is inconscient. Then how does it throw up everything and
raise
symbols in your consciousness?
Modern psychology is only surface deep. Really speaking a new
basis is needed for psychology. The only two
important requisites for real knowledge of

94

i.     
Going inwards,
and,

ii.     Identification.



Those
two are not possible without yoga.

*

5th
January 1939.

Disciple:
How long does human bone continue to grow?

Sri Aurobindo: Cranium fifty-five years, Madulanta fifty years.
Disciple: What was your age when you entered politics
(openly)? Sri Aurobindo: 33 years.

Disciple:
When did you begin yoga?

Sri Aurobindo: Somewhere in 1905.

Disciple:
How did you begin?

Sri Aurobindo: God knows how! It began very early perhaps. When I landed on the Indian
soil a
great calm and quiet
descended on me. There were also other characteristic experiences–at Poona
on the Parvati hills and then in Kashmir on the
Shankeracharya hill,–a sense of a great infinite Reality was felt. It was very
real.

Then at Baroda Deshpande tried to convert me to
yoga; but I had the usual ideas about it–that one
has to go to the forest and give up everything. I
was interested in the freedom of the country. But I
always thought that the great figures of the
world could not have been after a chimera and if there
was such a Power

95

why
not use it for the freedom of the country?

Barin
used to do automatic writing at Baroda. Once the spirit of my father appeared
on being
called. He gave some
remarkable prophecies. When asked to give proof about his identity he mentioned
the fact of having given a golden watch to Barin–which none in the company
knew.
And then he spoke of a picture
in Devdhar’s house. They tried to check up and found no picture there. The
spirit when told about it repeated it and asked us to look again. On consulting
the old
mother of Devdhar she said
there was an old picture which had been now plastered over.

About
Tilak, when questioned, the spirit said: “He will be the man who will
remain with the head
unbent when the
work will be on trial and others will bow.” Then we called Ramkrishna. He
did
not say anything. Only at the
end he said: “Mandir gado”–“build a temple”, which we at
that time
interpreted as starting
Mandirs–temples–for political Sanyasis, but which I later interpreted
correctly as, “make a temple in
yourself.” I began Pranayama–breathing exercises–in about 1905.
Engineer Devdhar was a disciple of Brahmananda. I
took instructions from him on Pranayama and
started on my own. I practiced Pranayama at Khasirao Jadhav’s place in
Baroda. The results were
remarkable:
I used to see many visions, sights and figures; (2) I felt a sort of electric
power round my head. (3) My powers of writing were nearly dried up, after the
practice of Pranayama, they
revived
with great vigour. I could write both prose and poetry with a flow. That flow
never ceased since then. If I have not written afterwards it is because I had
something else to do. But the moment



I
want to write, it is there. (4) My health

96

improved,–I
grew stout and strong and the skin became smooth and fair and there was a flow
of
sweetness in the saliva. I used to
feel a certain aura round the head. There were plenty of
mosquitoes there but they did not came to me.

I
used to sit more and more in Pranayama but there were no more results. It was
at this time that I
gave up
meat–diet and found a great feeling of lightness and purification in the
system. Meat is a
Rajasic food.
Vivekananda recommends it to the Indians. It gives a certain force and energy
in the
physical. It was for that the
Kshatriyas did not give up meat in India. From Tamas you pass to
Rajas and Vivekananda was not quite wrong.

There came a Sanyasi who gave me a Stotra of
Kali,–a very violent Stotra ending with “Jahi”
“Jahi”–“kill”, of securing
Indian freedom. I used to repeat it but it did not give any results.

Once
I visited Ganganath (Chandod) after Brahmananda’s death when Keshwananda was
there.

With my Europeanized mind I had no faith in
image-worship and I hardly believed in the presence
of God. I went to Kernali where there are several
temples. There is one of Kali and when I looked at the image I saw the living
presence there. For the first time, I believed in the presence of God.

At
one time–in Sadhana–I used to try all sorts of experiments to see what
happens and how far
they are related
to the truth. I took Bhang-Ganja-hemp-and other intoxicants as I wanted to know
what happens

97

and
why Sanyasis and Sadhus take these things. It made me go into trance, and
sometimes sent me to a superior plane of consciousness. (But reliance on these
outer stimulants was found to be the
greatest
drawback of this method.)

I
met Lele when I was searching for some guidance and practicing meditation under
his guidance. I
had the Nirvana
experience in Sardar Majumdar’s house in the room on the top-floor. After that
I
had to rely on inner guidance for
my Sadhana. In Alipore the Sadhana was very fast–it was
extravagant and exhilarating. On the vital plane
it can be dangerous and disastrous. I took to fasting
at Alipore for ten or eleven days and lost ten
pounds in weight. At Pondicherry the loss of weight was not so much, thought
the physical substance began to be reduced. It was in Shanker Chetty’s
house. I was walking eight hours a day during
twenty-three day’s fast. The miraculous or
extraordinary powers acquired by Yogis on the vital plane are not all
true in the physical. There are
many
pit-falls in the vital. These vital powers take up even a man like Hitler and
make him do
things by suggesting to
him–“It shall happen”. There are quite a number of cases of Sadhaks
who
have lost their Sadhana by
listening to these voices from the vital-world. And the humour of it all is
that they all say that they come either from the
Mother or from me!

6th
January, 1939

Disciple:
What are the methods in Sadhana for removal of the ego? Sri Aurobindo: There are two methods of
effacement of the ego:

1.   
By
realization of the spirit above and of its nature of purity, knowledge etc.

2.   
By humility in
the heart.

Disciple:
What is the difference?

Sri Aurobindo: The second method does not remove the ego but makes it harmless’ it
would
therefore help one
spiritually. Complete removal of the ego takes place when one identifies
oneself
with the Spirit and realizes
the same Spirit in all. Also when the mental, vital and physical nature is
known to be derivative from the Universal Mind,
universal vital and the universal physical then the
same result ensues. The individual must realize
his divinity i.e. his identity with the Transcendent
or the Cosmic Divine.

Generally,
when one realizes the Spirit, it is the mental sense of the ego that goes, not
the entire
ego-sense. The dynamic
nature retains the ego–especially the vital ego. So, the best thing would be
to combine the two–for the psychic attitude of humility helps in getting rid
of the

vital-dynamic-ego.

The complete dissolution of the ego is not an easy
thing. Specially important is the removal of
mental and vital ego, the other ego of the physical and of the
subconscient can be dealt with at
leisure.
That is to say, they are not so absorbing.

As I said, humility helps in the removal of the
vital ego, but one must remember that it is not
outward humility.

There
are many people who profess and show the

99

utmost
outward humility, but in their hearts think: “I am the man!”

Disciple:
“X” when he came for a short day, he found that you lacked the virtue
of humility or
modesty.

Sri Aurobindo: How does he know? Perhaps I did not profess like
some other people that I was
nothing.
I could not do that because I know I am not nothing.

Disciple:
Were you modest when you have not taken to yoga?

Sri Aurobindo: There was a sort of voluntary self-effacement, I
liked to keep myself behind. But I
can’t
say that I was more modest within than most people.

Disciple: Mahatmaji, when he finds somebody in disagreement
with him on principle, would say:
“He
is superior to me, he is my elder, etc.; but I differ from him”.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Does he really consider the other one superior, that is
the question. When I differed from some one
I simply said ‘No’ or “I don’t agree” and kept to my view. The answer
given
to Suren Banerji when he
approached me for a compromise at the convention of Moderates and
Nationalists, was “No” and I kept stiff.
Perhaps one may not call me modest.

At the Hugli Conference
we, the Nationalists, had the majority. But in order to keep up unity the

Nationalists
were asked by me not to oppose the compromise resolution. The Nationalists all
went
out. The Moderate leaders were
very angry that the people did not follow their tired and veteran old
leaders and so completely obeyed young leaders.
Suren Banerji could not realize the

100

difference
between old, upper middle class leadership, due to their influence and money
and the
new leadership of those who
stood for a principle and commanded a following.

It
was at that time that people began to get the sense of discipline and of
obeying the leader’s
orders. They
were violent, but at the word of the command they used to obey. That paved the
way
for the Mahatma. Ashwini Kumar
Dutt used to jump and say: “This is life”.

Suren
Banerji had a personal magnetism and he was sweet-spoken, he could get round
anybody.
His idea was to become the
undisputed leader of Bengal by using the nationalists for the sword and
the moderates for the public face. In private he
would go up to and accept the revolutionary
movement. He even wanted to set up a provincial board of control of the
revolutionaries! Barin
once took a
bomb to him and he was full of enthusiasm. He even had a letter from Suren
Banerji,
when he was arrested at
Manik Tola. But in the court they hushed up the matter as soon as Norton
pronounced S. N. Banerji.

The
constitution of Aundh was brought in by a disciple.

Disciple:
Aundh State has given a very fine constitution to the people. It has conferred
wide powers on the Panchayats. Such
constructive work among the villages would prevent communism.
They are thinking of introducing co-operative
farming.

Sri Aurobindo: Co-operative farming is an excellent thing; it would develop
agriculture. But
dictatorship of the

101

proletariat
is a different thing. It may have a very fine constitution on paper, but it is
quite different in practice. In such a system all men are made to think alike.

Religion
is a different affair, it is voluntary; but country is quite different from the
church. You
can’t choose your
country. If you make all people think alike there can’t be any human progress.
If
you were to differ from Stalin or
Lenin you would be liquidated.

These
dictators have remarkably few ideas: Take for example Hitler. He believes that:

I.  
The Germans
are the best people in the world.

II.Hitler should be the leader.

III.  
All the Jews
are wicked persons.

IV. 
All the
people in the world must be Nazis.

I
do not understand how humanity can progress under such conditions.

Disciple:
The tendency of all governments is to increase taxes.

Sri
Aurobindo:
All governments are
robbing, some with legislation, some without. You can well

imagine the condition in which you have to give
50% of your income as taxes and have to manage
with the rest as best you can.

Disciple:
The Customs also charge too heavily.

Sri Aurobindo: It is another form of robbery and yet in spite
of it all, I don’t understand how
France
produces only 250 aeroplanes as compared to 1000 of Germany!

102

I don’t know what these governments do with huge
sums they get. There is a sufficiently honest
administration in England. The public are uneasy about the war.

Smuggling there almost seems a virtue, because it
is robbing the robber! (Laughter)
Even
some of the princes are caught smuggling.

Disciple:
There is now a movement for separating the C.P. Marathi-speaking and
Hindi-speaking. It has weakened the Congress.

Sri Aurobindo: Nagpur was a very good centre of the
Nationalists. The two portions–Marathi and
Hindi–should have been separated to begin with.

7th
January, 1939

Disciple:
Can the ego be removed by the psychic attitude and by the realization of Self?

Sri Aurobindo: Psychic humility takes away the egoism but not
the ego; removing of the ego of the natural individuality is not the work of
the psychic. The psychic depends upon and maintains
the natural individuality. The psychic is there,
so that the natural individuality would turn to and
progress towards the Divine.

Disciple:
How is the ego removed?

Sri Aurobindo: Ego is removed by the realization of the Spirit;
that is, by attaining to the spiritual
consciousness
Above, which is independent of Nature, which is self-existent. That Spirit is
One in all. Realization of that

103

removes
the ego, because then one identifies himself with the Spirit.

Disciple: What then replaces the “I” in the
divine individual? What is the nature of the psychic
individuality?

Sri Aurobindo: In the case of psychic individuality the man may feel the ego of the
Sadhu-the Saint-the Bhakta-the devotee, or the virtuous man. He may also get
rid of egoism by imposing on
the
nature one Spirit and a feeling of sympathy for all humanity. But that is not
the same as getting rid entirely of the ego. The psychic clears the way for the
removal of the ego.

Disciple:
What happens when one realizes the Spirit?

Sri Aurobindo: Generally, when one realizes the Spirit, it is
the mental sense of the ego that is
abolished; but the vital and the physical still retain their egoistic
movements. That is what most

Yogi’s
mean when they say “It is nature”. They mostly allow it to run its
course and when the body
drops, it
also drops; but, it is not transformation. That is what Vivekananda meant when
he said
that “human nature cannot
be changed, that it was like a dog’s tail, you can straighten it if you like,
but as soon as you leave it, it is curved again.”.

Disciple:
What is really meant by this “nature”?

Sri Aurobindo: It means that the subconsciousness has in it
certain gathered powers which impose
themselves
on the human being.

Disciple:
How to transform or change this human nature?

Sri Aurobindo: In order to change human nature you have to work
from level to level; you reject a
thing from

104

the mind, it comes to the vital. When you reject
it from the vital, then it comes to the physical and
then you find it in the subconscient.

There
is a central point in the subconscient that has to be changed. If that is done,
then everything
is done. It is from
there that resistance rises from Nature–that is what Vivekananda meant. To
effect complete transformation you have to bring
down everything to the subconcient, and it is very
difficult.

Disciple:
How can one replenish the exhausted nervous being? Can it be done by drawing
energy
from the Universal Vital or by
the help of the Higher Power?

Sri Aurobindo: Both ways can be combined: One can draw from the Universal Vital and
the
Higher Power can also work. But
there should be no Tamas, inertia, and other excuses.

Disciple:
Was there a time when these things were experienced?

Sri Aurobindo: When we were living in the Guest-house, we passed through a brilliant
period of
Sadhana in the vital. Many
people had dazzling experiences and great currents of energy were
going round. If we had stopped there–like other
Yogis–we would have given rise to a brilliant creation, or, would have
established some kind of religion; but that would not have been the real
work.

Disciple:
Could a great person in the conquest of the physical being have been made at
that time?

Sri Aurobindo: If the Sadhaks had taken the right attitude, then
with the gain in the vital it would
have
been easy in the physical, in spite of difficulties. But that was not

105

done.
Then we came down to the physical. Those brilliant experiences disappeared and
the slow
difficult work of physical
transformation remained. There–in the physical–you find the truth of the
Vedik rik–censurers are always ready
telling–“you can’t do the thing, you are bound to fail”.

Disciple:
Would it then mean that the new people who would come to the yoga would have no
experience of the mental and the
vital planes?

Sri Aurobindo: They can have, if they hold aloof. Only, they
can’t help the pressure on the
physical
nature as it is in the atmosphere.

There
are cases that differ: there is some one X who made very good progress in the
mind. In
another case the Sadhak
became aloof and progressed; but the moment he came to the vital, the
whole thing seemed to have stopped.

Disciple:
Did he lose the contact with the Brahmic consciousness entirely?

Sri Aurobindo: No, it is only apparently lost. But if he cannot go further, then his
yoga stops there,
that is all.

Disciple:
Can the new comers make rapid progress?

Sri Aurobindo: Certainly they can. I know cases, where they go on very well making
good
progress.

Disciple:
Will the yoga be more easy for the lucky new comers?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, in a sense; but the conditions may be more exacting, and the
demands made
on them may be

106

high.
You had an easy time. You were left to do, more or less, as you liked in your
mind, and the
vital and other parts.
But when the change in the subconscious has to come about, many will find it
difficult; there will be some who will progress
and others who will not and will drop out. Already
some like X had dropped out, when the Mother took
a decision about his vital being-“you will have to change”. Before
that he was swimming in his art and other things, but as soon as this came he
dropped
out. All these things–attachments, sex-impulse etc.–finally find refuge in
the subconscient. One has to throw it out
from there–destruction of the seed in the subconscient is
necessary, otherwise it would sprout again, as we
see in the case of some Yogis.

Disciple:
Can one have these things in him when there is complete union with the Divine?

Sri Aurobindo: What is the “complete union”? For instance, Ramakrishna asked
the Divine
Mother not to send him
“Kama”–sex-impulse–and he succeeded, but all cases are not like
that. It
is quite possible to reject
something centrally and totally–that is to say, completely–but one can’t make
general rule about these things.

Our
yoga is like a new path made out in the jungle and there is no previous road in
the region. I had
myself great
difficulties; the suggestion that it was not possible was always there. A
vision which
the Mother has sustained
me: the vision of a carriage moving towards the highest peak on a steep
hill. The higher summit is the transformation of
Nature by the attainment of the Higher
consciousness.

Disciple:
Is there nothing that can be taken as established informally in all the yogas?

107

Sri
Aurobindo:
In this yoga you have
to go on working out again and again the same thing. Thus it
becomes a long drawn out struggle, one falls and
rises, again falls. Take for instance, Nirvana,
quietude and samata. I had to go on establishing them again and again
till when I had done it in the

subconscient this accident came. It can be a test.
Disciple: What made the attack possible?

Sri Aurobindo: There were gaps in the physical. Disciple: Can one take this as a part of Lila or game?

Sri Aurobindo: Well, it is the ignorance and the Divine is
working out from there. If that was not
so, what is the meaning of the life?

Everything
looked all right and it appeared as if I was going on well with the work, then
the
accident came. It indicated that
it is when the subconscient is changed that the power of Truth can be embodied;
then it can be spread in wave after wave in humanity.

*

8th
January, 1939.

Disciple:
Can one way that snoring is the protest of the subconscient against somebody’s
presence?
(Laughter)

Sri Aurobindo: Against whom? against whose presence when one snores alone! (Laughter)

Disciple:
We read in the papers about the conversion of John Middleton Murry to theism.
It was
Hitler’s statement after the
purage that he “embodies justice and law”,

108

that,
he dispenses with “trials”–which made Murry consider him as the
Anti-Christ. It seems Gandhian non-violence has also appealed to Hitler. He
wants to become a village pastor and stop the flow of villagers to the cities.
Gandhi has written about Hitler’s regime that the sufferings of
Bishop Nicmuller are not in vain. He has covered
himself with glory. Hitler’s heart may be harder
than stone, but non-violence has power to generate heat that can melt
the stonier heart. What do
you think
of that?

Sri Aurobindo: I am afraid, it would require quite a furnace! (Laughter) Gandhi has
mainly to deal
with Englishmen and
the English want to have their conscience at ease. Besides, the Englishman
wants
to satisfy his self-esteem and wants world-esteem. But if Gandhi had to deal
with the Russian Nihilists–not the
Bolshevites–or the German Nazis then they would have long ago put
him out of their way.

Disciple:
Gandhi is hopeful about the conversion of Hitler’s heart or about the German
people
throwing him over.

Sri Aurobindo: Hitler would not have been where he is if he had
a soft heart. It is curious how
some
of the most sentimental people are most cruel. Hitler, for instance, is quite
sentimental. He
weeps over his
mother’s tomb and paints sentimental pictures.

Disciple:
It is “the London cabman’s psychic” as you said the other day.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. Men like Hitler can’t change, they have to be bumped out of
existence: There is no chance of their changing in this life. He can’t get rid
of his cruelty–it is his blood.

Not
that the British can’t be brutal and sentimental too. But they can’t persist as
the Germans and
the Russians in their
brutality. The Englishman may be sentimental, but he likes to show off that he
is practical, prosaic and brave. In the Russian,
you find a mixture of cruelty and sentimentalism. He
can break your neck and in the next moment embrace
you. The English man behaves quite well, if you give him blows on his face when
he treats you badly.

Disciple: In Fiji islands there was the case of a Punjabi
from a good family, who went there as an
indentured labourer. An Englishman was his supervisor and used to beat
him every day, in spite of his doing the hard allotted work.

One day the Punjabi got fed up and caught hold of
him and threw him on the ground and went on
giving him blows. Then the Englishman said “that will do!” He
got up and shook hands with him
and
the two became great friends!! (Laughter).

Disciple:
There was the case of Shamakant, the tiger-tamer, an athlete of Bengal. While
he was traveling some Tommis came and tried to show their strength. He knocked
them so well that they
were extremely
glad to get out of the compartment at the next station. They did not expect a
Bengali to be so strong.

Another time the train at Howrah was stopped, as
there was a fight between an Englishman and a
Bengali. There was a cry of “Bande Mataram” and the whole
train came out.

Sri Aurobindo: That was the sudden transformation during the Swadeshi days. Before
that the
people used to

110

tremble
before an Englishman in Bengal. The position was even reversed.

I
remember when I wanted to do political work I visited Bengal and toured the
districts of Jessors,
Khulna etc. We
found that the people steeped in pessimism, a black weight of darkness weighing
over the whole country. It is
difficult now a days to imagine those days. I was traveling with Deva Vrata
Bose; he was living on plantains and speaking to people. He had a very
persuasive way of
talking. It was at
Khulna, we had a right royal reception, not so much because I was a politician,
but because I was a son of my father.
They served me with seven rows of dishes and I could hardly
reach out to them, and even from others I could
eat very little.

My
father was very popular at Khulna; wherever he went he became all powerful.
When he was at Rangpur he was very friendly with the magistrate-there. We went
to his cousin’s place in England
afterwards,
the Drewettes. It was always the doctor (i.e. K.D. Ghose) who got things done
at
Rangpur. When the new magistrate
came he found that nothing could be done without Dr. K.D.
Ghose. So he asked the Government to remove him
and he was transferred to Khulna. It was since
that time that he became a politician. That is to say, he did not like
the English domination. Before
that
every thing Western was good! He wanted, for example, all his sons to be great;
at that time to
join the I.C.S. was
to become great. He was extremely generous. Hardly anyone who went to him for
help came back empty handed.

Disciple: Did you see him after coming from England? Sri Aurobindo: I could not. In fact, I was the cause of his

death.
He was having heart-trouble and the Grindleys sent a wire to him that I had
started by a certain steamer. In fact I had not; and that steamer was sunk near
Portugal and so when he heard
the
news he thought that I was drowned and he died of that shock.

Disciple:
But when you were in England was he sending you money regularly?

Sri Aurobindo: In the beginning. But afterwards he sent less and less and ultimately
he stopped
altogether. I had my
scholarship at Cambridge but that was not enough to cover the fees and other
expenses. So once the tutor wrote to him about
money. Then he sent the exact sum for the fees and
wrote a letter lecturing to me about extravagance!
(laughter)

But
it was not true; I and my eldest brother at any rate, were living quite Spartan
life. My brother
worked with Henry
Cotton’s brother in the Liberal association (Kensington) and used to get 50
shillings a week. On that and little more we two
managed to live. We had bread and a piece of
bacon in the morning; at night some kind of pastry. For the winter we
had not overcoat. After one year like that to talk of extravagance was absurd.
But Mono Mohan could not stand it; he went out
and lived in boarding house and ate nicely without money.

There was a tailor at Cambridge who used to tempt
me with all sorts of clothes for suits and make
me buy them; of course, he gave credit. Then I went to London. He
somehow traced me there and found Mono Mohan and canvassed orders from him (!)
Mono Mohan went in for velvet suits, not
staring red but aesthetic and used to visit Oscar Wilde in that suit.

112

Then
we came away to India but the tailor was not to be deprived of his dues! He
wrote to the
Government of Bengal
and to the Baroda State for recovering sum from me and Mono Mohan.

I
had paid up all my dues and kept £4/–or so. I did not believe that I was bound
to pay it, since he
always charged me
double. But as the Maharajah said, I had better pay it, I paid.

Disciple:
Did Mono Mohan follow your political career?

Sri Aurobindo: He was very proud of our political career. He used to say: “There
are two and a
half men in India–my
brother Aurobindo and Barin–two and half is Tilak!” (laughter)

Disciple:
How was Mono Mohan in England?

Sri Aurobindo: He used to play the poet: he had poetical
illness and used to moan out his verses in deep tones. Once we were passing
through Cumberland and it was getting dark. We shouted to him
but he paid no heed, and came afterwards leisurely
at his own pace. His poet-playing dropped after he came to India.

Disciple:
How as the eldest brother?

Sri Aurobindo: He was not at all poetic or imaginative. He took after my father. He
was very
practical but very easy to
get on with. He had fits of miserliness.

The question of Barin when he came to Baroda and
stayed for sometime was: How can I stay with
Khaserao or Madhave Rao for months and years without quarreling?



10th
January 1939.

Disciple: My friend “X” has begun to give
medicine to some of my patients. Sri Aurobindo:
So, you have your “Homeo-Allo” alliance or axis!

Talk
on Homeopathy was going when the Mother came.

Mother:
Do you know about a school of Homeopathy in Switzerland which is very famous in
Europe? It prepares medicines also.
They have books in which symptoms are grouped together and
remedies are indicated for a group of symptoms.
It is a very convenient method; only, you have to
have the book; or good memory. But are you allowed
to practice Homeopathy without license?

Disciple:
Oh, yes. No license is required in India.

Disciple:
But Dr. S was telling that using great potencies might harm, or even kill the
patient. It is
dangerous if everybody
beings to practice it, they say.

Disciple:
In Bengal it is practiced everywhere.

Sri Aurobindo: Is Yunani medicine practiced in India?

Disciple:
Yes, in cities where there is Mohammedian population, and in Muslim states. In
Delhi
there is the Tibbi college
founded by Hakim Ajmal Khan. It seems, it is the only school of Unani
medicine in the whole of Asia. Students from Turkey,
Egypt and Afghanistan used to come there to
learn. Ajmal Khan was the direct descendent of the court Hakim to the
Mogul Emperors. Where
from is it
derived?

114

Sri Aurobindo: It is from the Greek school. They use animal
products and salts. Besides curing
which
is common to all the systems the Unani lays claim to rejuvenate the human
system. Many
diseases which require
operation for their cure in Allopathy are cured by Unani and Ayurvedic
medicines without operation.

There
were many specific cures known in India but I am afraid they are getting lost.
I remember
the case of Jyotindra
Nath Banerji who had a remedy for sterility from a Sannyasi and he used it
with success. Many cases of barrenness for ten or
fifteen years were cured within a short time. The
direction for taking the medicine were very
scrupulously to be observed. He knew a remedy for
hydrocele.

Mother:
Do you know about the Chinese medicine? Once they had a rule that you paid the
doctor
so long as you were well. All
payment stopped when one became ill, and if the patient died they
used to put a mark on the doctor’s door to show
that his patient had died.

But
the Chinese method of pricking the nerve and curing the disease is very
remarkable. The idea
is that there is
a point of nerve where the attack of the disease is concentrated and if you
prick the
point, or the Devil, on
the head, the disease is cured. They find out this nervous point from the
indications that the patient gives, or sometimes
they find out by themselves also.

Disciple: I
do not think that any system of medicine can succeed in curing all diseases. I
believe



that
only yogic power can cure all diseases.

Disciple:
Even that is not unconditional; otherwise, it might be very nice. There are
conditions to
be fulfilled for the
yogic power to succeed.

115

Sri Aurobindo: Do you expect that the yogic power, or consciousness will simply say
“Let there
be no disease and there
will be no disease”?

Disciple: Not that way. But cases of miraculous cures are
known, that is, cures effected without any conditions.

Sri Aurobindo: That is another matter. Otherwise, the Yogi has
to get up every morning and say
“Let
everybody in the world be all right” and there would be no disease in the
world! (Laughter)

*

12th
January 1939

There
was a controversy about a child who was underage and had an intense aspiration
to remain in the Ashram, i.e. to be under Mother’s protection and guidance. But
being under the guardianship of
her
parents the child could not carry out her inner wish. Ultimately the parents,
particularly the
mother, took the
child away.

Some
Evening-Talks refer to this incident.

Sri Aurobindo: She–the child–has developed character and intelligence quite beyond
her age.
When she wrote to us she
used to cast reflections on the world and on people that was even beyond
a grown up woman. She is remarkable for her age.

The
mother has found it difficult to bend her. It is true, the mother does not love
her. It is an
accident that she is
born in that family; she is quite unlike her parents. Besides, she has found
out
that the mother used to manage
her by lying.

Disciple:
They say that the child is very happy outside.

116

Sri Aurobindo: But she wrote to us that she is never happy outside!

Disciple:
In the papers we find that Stalin has made allegations against Trotsky; can
there be any
truth in them?

Sri Aurobindo: Not creditable.

Disciple:
But the confessions of the generals were dramatic.

Sri Aurobindo: That they did to save their relatives.

Disciple: A
Japanese general predicts a hundred year war to civilize the world!

Sri Aurobindo: The idea is first to drive out the European from Asia, but the
Japanese will go
about it silently
without bragging.

Disciple:
Will Indian freedom come long time after?

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily; it will not come by arms but
without arms.
Disciple: How?

Sri Aurobindo: There is a prophesy among the Sannyasis and also
Lele used to tell us that there is no chance of freedom by fighting.

Disciple:
Italy or Japan can come to help India.

Sri Aurobindo: That is not so easy. Naval equipment is not
enough; without a strong army it is
very
difficult to conquer India.

Disciple: Congress ministers are trying to introduce
military training in U.P., C.P., and Bombay.
But Sir Sikander

117

Hayat
in the Panjab is counting the distinction between martial and non-martial
races.

Sri Aurobindo: That was introduced by the British to keep down
India by depriving her of military
races
except the Pathans, Gurkhas, Panjabees etc. But every part of India had its
empire in the past.
The whole of
India can have military equipment and training in a short time.

Disciple:
The problem is of the Muslims.

Sri Aurobindo: They also want independence; only they want” “Mohammedan
independence”.

Disciple: Spain in Europe seems to be like India. But if
France gets Spain it would be difficult for
England.

Sri Aurobindo: It will be worse for France; by the spring the intentions of the Axis
powers will be
known.

Disciple:
But why France depends so much upon England?

Sri Aurobindo: Because she has no other ally.

Disciple:
It is the short-sighted policy of the Allies, that has given chance to Hitler.

Sri Aurobindo: No, it is England that got afraid of France ascendancy on the continent
and
encouraged and pressed Germany
into power. She wants to maintain the balance of power. Hitler aims at France.

France
always wants to placate Italy; but England came in the way with
“sanctions”. They could not save Abyssinia and made an enemy of
Mussolini.

Disciple:
The cry of Tunis was to divert the attention from Spain.

118

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t think Blum’s Socialist government is for non-intervention. The
Socialist in
France did nothing when
they were in power.



Disciple: Perhaps Russia can render some help.

Sri Aurobindo: Russia is too far and I don’t know if it is
trustworthy.
Disciple: But the newspapers report that America is
preparing armaments.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes,
perhaps Roosevelt has secret news about the intentions of Nazis. It is not a
question of meddling in European politics, but of
being eaten last! (Laughter) There are at least
some people in America who understand this thing.

*

13th January 1939.

The Mother was present when X put
the following question to her.
Disciple: Mother, is it
a sin to kill bugs, mosquitoes, scorpions etc.?

“Ask Sri Aurobindo”; The
Mother replied smiling. “When I came here I used to drive them away
by yogic force. Sri Aurobindo did not approve of
it.”

Sri Aurobindo: Because one is making friendship with the in that
way. What is the sin? If you
don’t
kill them they will go and bite some other people and won’t it be a sin to you?

Disciple: But they have
life, Sir? Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they
have.
119

Disciple: And, if one kills them?

Sri Aurobindo: Well, what happens?

Disciple: He will be liable to sin of course. I don’t mean
we don’t kill at all, for instance, we are
breathing microbes.

Mother: The doctors don’t kill?

Disciple: Yes Mother. But I mean their killing is not
intentional.
Disciple: It is said that the Jains hire people to feed
bugs!
Disciple: No. That is only a story.

Sri Aurobindo: At any
rate, I know of a story in history. When Mahmed of Gazni invaded (West)
India he defeated a Jain king through the help of
his brother. The dethroned king was left in charge
of his brother, who was now the king. He did not
know what to do with his brother; so, he dug a pit
below his throne and threw him in it and closed it
up. As a result he died: so that his brother did not kill him! (laughter)

Mother: Then, in order to be true Jain, one must be a
yogi and then with yogic power he can deal
with these animals and insects?

Disciple: Is one justified in killing snakes and scorpions?



Sri Aurobindo: Why not? One must kill in self-defense. I don’t mean that you must
hunt out the
snakes and kill them.
But when you see that they are endangering your or other lives, then you
have every right to kill them.

Mother: The
plants have also life. So, you mean to say

120

that mosquito is more precious then rose? You
don’t know perhaps how the plants feel.
Disciple:
There are people who say that killing a dog or a cat is not so sinful as
killing a man.

Sri Aurobindo: Life is life–whether in a cat, or dog or man. There is no difference
in that between cat or man. The idea of difference is a human conception for
man’s own advantage perhaps.

*

14th
January 1939

The topic of Homeopathy came up. It was said that
it has cures for religious depression and anger
also.

Disciple:
Anger, the scientists say, is due to the reaction of glands. But can
“egoism” be cured like
that?

Disciple:
If it can be cured, I would be the first to apply for it.

Disciple:
“The fact you are conscious about the “ego” makes half the
cure–is it not?” he said
turning
to Sri Aurobindo.

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. But it is the first step. Disciple: And what is the second?

Sri Aurobindo: To detach oneself from all these things; to think as if all these
things belong to the
other being, or
some one else. As one goes on doing this the Purusha gradually withdraws its
sanction from the Prakriti and

121

the Prakriti looses its hold over nature till a
spiritual control takes place. But if one associates
oneself with Nature, Prakriti, then the Purusha
becomes slave to it. Rejection, of course, is the stronger way. One has to
reject these things before they enter, as I did the thoughts. It is more
powerful and the result also is quick.

There is also a mental control; but there too it
is the nature of Mind trying to control the nature of
the Vital. It has only a temporary and partial
control. The thing is rather suppressed within and can
come out at any opportunity.

I
heard of a Yogi in Benares bathing in one of the Ghats. In the neighbouring
ghat a Kashmiri
woman came to bathe.
As soon as he saw her he fell upon her and tried to outrage her. That is
evidently a case of mental control. But by Sadhana–yogic
effort–sometimes things which have not
been there come up. I have heard about it from many persons.



In
my case, I saw anger coming up and possessing me. It was absolutely
uncontrollable when it
came. I was
very much surprised as to my nature. Anger has always been foreign to me.

At
another time while I was a undertrial prisoner at Alipore jail, a terrible
catastrophe was avoided.
Prisoners
had to wait outside for sometime before entering the cells. As we were waiting
a Scotch
Warder came and gave me a
push. The young men around me became very excited, and I did
nothing but gave him such a look that he
immediately fled and called the jailer. It was a
communicative anger and all the young men rallied round to attack him.
When the jailer, who was
rather a
religious man arrived, the Warder said, I had given him

122

a “subordinate look”. The jailer asked
me and I told him that I have never been used to such
treatment. The jailer pacified the whole group
and said while going, “we have all to bear our
cross.”

Disciple:
Is Rudra Bhava something like Ramakrishna’s story about the snake, where anger
is to be
shown without really feeling
it.

Sri Aurobindo: Not at all. It is something genuine, a violent severity against
something very
wrong. e.g. the Rudra
Bhava of Shiva. Anger one knows by its feeling of sensations, it rises from
below, while Rudra Bhava rises from the heart. I will give you an instance.
Once X became very
violent against
the Mother and was shouting and showing his fists. As I heard the shouting, a
violent severity came down, that was absolutely
uncontrollable. I went out and said: “Who is shouting at the Mother? Who
is shouting here?” As soon as he heard it he became very quiet.

Disciple: I
heard X had a very violent temper.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, he was otherwise an earnest Sadhaka, became conscious of many
things and
made progress. But these
fits used to come to him now and then. Some Asuric forces used to catch
hold of him and he could not control himself. It
is these forces that have failed him in the yoga, for
I hear he does not have these attacks now
outside. When under the grip he could not see that he was
in the wrong. He blamed me and the Mother, though
we had been very lenient and considerate to him. After sometime he was able to
recognize his faults, admit it and promise that he would not do it again. But
again he would be swept away by the forces. Sometimes his vanity and
self-respect
would come in

123

the
way of his admitting the fault immediately. That is the mistake. One must not
justify one’s
wrong. If one does
that, it comes again and makes it more difficult to get rid of it.

Disciple: ‘Y’ after doing so much Tapasya is thinking of
leaving the Ashram and that too after
twelve
years of stay.

Sri Aurobindo: What Tapasya? If complete control was given to
him he would have stayed
perhaps.

Disciple:
He says, he is helping the Mother.

Sri Aurobindo: Helping only? I thought he was conducting the Ashram? (Laughter)



Disciple:
but these kinds of people–will they ever realize the Divine?

Sri Aurobindo: Everyone will arrive at the Divine. ‘A.’ once asked the Mother if he
will realize
God. The Mother replied
that he will, unless he did something idiotic and cut short the life, and that
is what he has done.

*

15th
January, 1939

Sri
Aurobindo opened the topic by referring to a letter from an American.

Sri Aurobindo: There is a job which perhaps “X:” would like to attend to.
The letter is addressed
to Sri
Aurobindo Ashram under the belief that it is a person. The man wants sporting
items, and
“predictions”.
He says:

124

As
you are a Yogi you “can go into trance” and we will share the
profits!! Let me know your terms.
Then
he says: “If you don’t want to take the money, you can give it to the
poor! (turning to X.).
You can go
into trance or send “Y” into it. I will be a hard nut.

I have no objections to sharing profits, only we
share in profits not in loss!! Besides, we class
ourselves among the poor, so we won’t have to find them! (pause)

All sorts of half-crazy people are writing to us
from every where, from Germany, America etc. I
wonder how they manage to get the address.

Disciple:
It must be from the magazine in which A wrote an article giving his Ashram
address
from which he thought
“Aurobindo Ashram” was a man! In that case, A must take up the matter
and reply to this man.

Disciple:
I am afraid, we won’t get anything in spite of the proposal to share profits.
In Gujarat
there was–I believe even
now is–a small group of seekers under the guidance of late Narsimhacharya who
got an offer from American promising fabulous returns from small
investments. The followers were all taken in,
Lakhs of rupees were sent and nothing was heard
afterwards.

Disciple: On the other hand some Indian Sannyasis are
making good business in America. One of
them has modernized yoga; his method is a combination of business and
yoga, “sets of lectures and
courses
of meditation” etc.

Sri Aurobindo: “R” was telling “M” that if he went to America he
would be a great success. I
think
“R” was right. Some of these people have the character of a
charlatan.

125

Disciple:
But coming to his question: is it possible to predict sport items and cotton
prices and
share-fluctuations?

Disciple: I
knew an astrologer who impressed my cousin very much and when he acted under
his
guidance his predictions did not
at all come true.

Sri Aurobindo: But I had a remarkable experience at Baroda, not
of an astrologer but of one who
knew
thought-reading. His predictions as an astrologer were all wrong. The manager
of my house,
Chhotalal, took me to
this man and asked me to have some questions in my mind.

As we entered his room he told me all the four
questions that were in my mind; and the curious thing is that three questions
were clearly formulated in my mind, but the fourth one had escaped
me; but he caught that also; it was remarkable.

Disciple:
Is anything being done to get some of your books published in America?

Sri Aurobindo: No. Besides, I don’t know if the Americans are interested in profound
questions.
Swami Nikhilananda, I
heard, wrote an article about me which Miss Wilson Nishta says, was
profound. The editor of the paper returned it
saying, “it won’t interest the Americans,” and he had to change it
and made it what it is.

Disciple:
But the Americans are open to new ideas.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. If they would not want sensation and change the openness to new
ideas
would be very great advantage.
As it is all one can say is that there are more people in America
interested in these things than in

126

Europe,
though in Europe also the number of people who are interested in these things
is increasing
now a days.

Disciple: One Thompson, graduate from Oxford, according to
his own statement, came to the gate
and
I had some humourous exchange of sentences with him. He was very queer.

Sri Aurobindo: It must be he, who recently sent me a long
letter on philosophy. I don’t think, he
himself was clear about what he wrote. What was your exchange with him
like?

Disciple:
I was just going out when the Sadhak at the gate-duty asked me to help him to
understand
this new arrival,
Thompson. I asked him: May I know your name, please? He: “Name! I have no
name”. “Apart from philosophical considerations about the reality or
unreality of it, a name is a necessity in this unphilosophical world” I said.
He: “You can call me anything you like–it matters
very little to me”. I: “It is not a
question of my calling you anything. Unfortunately there is the
Police Department which will demand a passport
with a name, and that matters.”

Sri Aurobindo: Then what did he say?

Disciple:
At last he said his name was Thompson.” (laughter)

Disciple: I
remember a difficult question: “Is it in keeping with yoga to get oneself
insured?”

Sri Aurobindo: Thakur Dayananda would say “no”. He was
always depending on God and did not
believe
in storing things. If you don’t get anything, it means, God wants

127

you
to starve. The whole group used to sing and dance, there was an excited
expression of their
Sadhana, some
kind of vital demonstration.

Later
on he complained that the disciples were drawing out his vital forces.

They had the faith that nothing could happen to
them; when the police came to arrest them they
were all singing and dancing. Seeing them in exaltation the police went
away. They thought that
they were
invincible. The Government sent soldiers to arrest them. Then their faith was
shaken. One of the prominent disciples, Mohindra De also lost his faith, though
he was the victim of his
own
enthusiasm.

Disciple: How can the vital forces of oneself be drawn out
when one is in contact with the Divine?

Sri Aurobindo: The force that supports the work, the vital
force, is different from the Divine
Consciousness.

Disciple:
Do you remember one Kulkarni who came and was complaining that his vital force
was
being drawn out?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. He was surrounding by forces of disintegration, chaos, disaster
and death.
And he was unconsciously
throwing it out.

Disciple: One of us then told you that Kulkarni had
strength and intensity. Then you had said something remarkable: “You call
it strength? It is some wild intensity of weakness–not strength!”

Sri Aurobindo: Intensity with solidity pays; but without
support below, it does not lead to
anything.
‘B’ was like that and so was ‘J.’

128

Disciple:
But B did brilliant work.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. What he did was brilliant but slight, there
was nothing below to support, the
intensity
had no body, so to say. He went because of his ambition, he wanted to be
right-hand man.
Mother put a divine
entity into him; it left him when he left the place. He has failed all through.

Disciple:
But he was a good lieutenant in the old days.

Sri Aurobindo: There are some people who are good as
lieutenants, but by themselves they are
nothing. ‘B’ is like that. I supported him but he used to leave one
thing and go in for another. He
spoiled
his career through his own fault.

Disciple:
Some people say that now he speaks unfavourably about the Ashram.

Sri Aurobindo: We know that. To ‘M’ who was coming here he
said: “he has caught you by his
philosophy”
meaning me.

But
the Mother knows these things even without any reports from outside.

Disciple: Our friend D who has the “eternal
doubter” in him met Upen Banerjee at Calcutta and
asked Upen whether he believes in God.

Sri Aurobindo: What did Upen say?

Disciple: He said: “How can I say I don’t believe in
God when I know Sri Aurobindo? I have a
measuring rod for men and I can measure them all right; but in Sri
Aurobindo’s case I cannot
measure
him. In case of other

great people they reach a certain point in their
growth and then they stop, whereas in his case he is
always going on further and further.

Sri Aurobindo: (smiled) I see. Upen also has intensity; he had agnosticism and faith.
It is that
which makes his writing
brilliant. But he could never understand the “Arya”. Why, Rishikesh
(Kanjilal) also was one in whom doubt could never get the better of faith and
faith could not of
doubt! (Laughter)
He always wanted to fix himself to some anchor,–he could not give up seeking,
nor pursue steadily and find an anchor. “The
movement will not grow” he used to say. (after pause)
The revolutionaries were quite an interesting lot
and though not fit for yoga, one could not feel dull in their company.

Disciple:
“K” was enthusiastic about Sadhana.

Sri Aurobindo: He was. But he was not able to stand the trial of
yoga. I don’t think he had the
capacity
to do the yoga; he had too tall an idea about himself, and he is crude. And as
to ‘Kh’ I
wonder how he could ever
have done the yoga.

*

16th
January 1939.

There was a humourous sequel to a telegram
requesting for “ashes”. It was a puzzle for some time
and after some effort the word
“ashisha”, meaning “blessing” was rightly understood.

Disciple: I
do not understand why he is asking for “ashes”.

130

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t understand either. When I used to smoke I could have sent at
least the cigar
ashes. But now I do
not smoke?

Disciple:
But we are burning here the mosquito-coils. The ashes of the coils can be sent.
(laughter)

Disciple:
But I think he is asking for Blessings–the post office in receiving the
Sanskrit word
Ashisha seems to have
turned it into “ashes”! (Laughter)

Disciple: I
read a paper written by Prof. Somesh Bose, a mathematician, in which he
mentions that
Bholagiri, a Sadhu had
meditation with his wife who was dead. He says that he saw them both, his dead
wife present “in flesh and blood”. The question is: Is it possible?
Also, whether Bholanath
materialized
his wife or she did it herself? Somesh says, she was everyday present at the
prayer
time. Can she remain like that
in her materialized body almost all the time? Does she live with Bholagiri all
the time, or does she come and go? What will materialists say?

Disciple:
They will say, it is all humbug. (turning to Sri Aurobindo) But what does yoga
say?

Sri Aurobindo: “Many possibilities”. This seems to be a case of temporary
materializing, as
Bholagiri is
present every time. I believe, there is always a difference between material
body and a
materialized body. This
kind of materializing commonly takes place immediately after a man dies.
You find that he visits either a relation or a
friend. If the fact of his death is not known or if the
man is not known to be living far away, people
mistake it for an actual physical presence.



There
are many authentic cases of this kind. My poetic brother Mono Mohan’s friend
Stephen
Philips said that his mother
had visited him after her death. Mono Mohan told me the story,
ascribing the experience to telepathic
communication of the form. But I think it is not mere
communication of form or cast by the mind only.
There is the vital and the physical part which
materializes.

Disciple:
You have already cited the other day the case of Lord Strethmore. But is it
possible to
materialize completely?

Sri Aurobindo: Theoretically, it should be possible, though I have known no case of
the same.
After the experience we had
of the stone-throwing in the Guest-house here, I believe, if the stones
could be materialized, why not a human being?

Disciple: The Egyptians preserved the human body after
death, with the belief that the soul would return to it after some years. Paul
Brunton claims to have met some spirit hoary with age on the hill
near the pyramids.

Sri Aurobindo: The Egyptians believed that at the time of death
the Ka, the vital being, went out
of
the man and after a thousand years, if the body was preserved, it would return
to it. Brunton, I
suppose,
materialized the belief.

Disciple: Is it possible to revitalize the dead? Sri Aurobindo: I can’t say.

Disciple:
There is a reported case of a Bey whom Brunton met and who revived a sparrow
after it
was dead. Brunton says that
he saw the same phenomenon perfor-

132

med
by Vishuddhananda, “Gandhi Swamy” as he was called. Is it possible?

Sri Aurobindo: That is possible. Just as you can revive a drowned man by pulling his
physical
organs into function again,
that is, by resorting to physical devices life can be restored. If you know
how to reintroduce the power that sets the organs
to action, after the body is wounded or dead, you can revive the man.

The
real question is whether it is the being of the man that comes back to life, or
it is some other
spirit that wants to
live and gets hold of the body. Both are possible, because revival is done in
two
ways: One, is to bring back the
spirit of the man which is still not far away, the other is to get some other
spirit that consents to come.

Disciple:
Can the vital-being be called back to the body?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if it has not gone away very far it can be
pulled back to the body.
(The subject
was changed)

Disciple:
There is chance of “C” coming.

Disciple: He
has been coming for a long time.



Disciple:
He is coming after organizing his property.

Sri Aurobindo: Is he still organizing his property? Has he much
property left?
Disciple: I am afraid he has lost everything.

Sri Aurobindo: He is a phenomenon! Do you remember

133

the name of the person who apologized to us? I
wonder whether he offered the apology because his
public attack did not succeed.

Disciple: Yes. He seemed to have gathered all sorts of
false facts from all kinds of people.
Disciple:
Did you read his book?

Sri Aurobindo: I simply glanced at it! I don’t think he sold
more than half a dozen copies. (after a
pause) It seems “M” has expressed sorrow for what she did
here and explained that she acted under
the influence of S and B.

Disciple:
The attack by “R” was not of any allegations. His objection was that
the Ashram was not
doing what he
calls public work.

Sri Aurobindo: What work?

Disciple:
Say country’s work, work for humanity.

Sri Aurobindo: It is quite a new objection. Nobody expects an
Ashram, a spiritual institution, to
do work!

Disciple:
The Ramkrishna Mission, Gandhi’s Ashram and some other institutions do some
public
work and so people expect an
Ashram to work for humanity.

Sri Aurobindo: Perhaps, because I did political work they expect that I should
continue doing it all
my life.

Disciple: Not only that, the objection is that so many
young men are being drawn away from the field of work.

134

Sri Aurobindo: Oh, I see.

Disciple:
But Gandhi’s Ashram is not a spiritual institution. It is a group of people
gathered to be
trained to do some
work on Mahatma’s principles and methods. One can say that service to the
public is one of their aims.

But
Subhas wrote against the Ashram recently on the ground that it was attracting
away some of the best people from country’s work.

Disciple: I don’t remember if he wrote “best” or
“good” for those who came here. He quoted the
example of D.

Sri Aurobindo: But D was not doing political work.

Disciple:
Subha’s idea was that D may not do political work now. But when the time came
he must
be prepared to give up
everything and join the struggle.

Sri Aurobindo: I see, one can’t give up everything for God!

Disciple:
But suppose one gives up everything for country’s freedom, then what is he to
do
afterwards, except perhaps going
to jail.

Sri Aurobindo: D in jail! Perhaps he would write off some
stories about his agony.
Disciple: That, perhaps,
would be a gain to literature, not to politics.

Sri Aurobindo: At the time of the Gandhi movement some one
asked Abanindranath Tagore, why
he
was not giving up his painting for the sake of the country and take to
politics. He said: I believe,
I serve
the country through my painting in which I have some capacity, that, at

135

least,
is something I know; whereas I would be only a bad politician.

Disciple:
Tagore narrowly escaped the Charkha. But it seems Nandlal Bose is turning at!

Sri Aurobindo: He is a man of ascetic temperament. There was an enthusiast who even
wrote an
article showing that the
Chakra referred to in the Gita was the Charkha!

Disciple:
It was Vinoba Bhave, a disciple of Mahatma.

The
topic changed to Baroda. Dr. M. mentioned that now the old race course is
covered by fine
buildings
constructed by co-operative Societies and that doctor Balabhai was still alive
staying in
one of the new buildings.
He is nearly eighty-five.

Sri Aurobindo: (After a pause) The mention of Baroda brought to my mind the connection
with the Gaekwad. It is strange how things arrange themselves at times. I had
failed in the I. C. S. and
was
looking for a job. Exactly at the time the Gaekwad happened to be in London. I
don’t
remember whether he called us,
or we met him, but an elderly gentleman, whom we consulted, was quite willing
to propose Rs. 200/- per month as a good sum. It would be more than £10/- and
it is
surprising that he thought it
was very good!

But
I left the negotiations to my elder brother and James Cotton. I knew nothing
about life at that
time.

Disciple:
What were the expenses in those days?

Sri Aurobindo: Before the war, it was quite decent living for £5/-. Our landlady was
an angel. She
came from

136

Somerset and had
settled in London–perhaps after she was widowed. She was long suffering and
never asked us for money even if we did not pay
for months and months. I wonder how she
managed. I paid her from my I. C. S. stipend.

It was father’s fault that I failed in the riding
test. He did not send money and the riding lessons at
Cambridge then were rather costly. The teacher was
also careless; so long as he got his money he
simply left me with the horse and I was not particular.

I
tried riding again at Baroda with Madhav Rao but it was not successful.

My
failure was a great disappointment to my father because he had arranged
everything for me
through Sir Henry
Cotton. A post was kept for me in the district of Arah which is considered a
fine
place. All that came down like a
wall. (pause)

I wonder what would have happened to me if I had
joined the civil service. I think, they would
have chucked me for laziness and arrears of work! (laughter)

Disciple:
Do you remember Nana Saheb Sinde of Baroda?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, Madhav Rao Jadhav, myself and Nana Saheb all
of us held revolutionary
ideas at
that time.

Disciple:
He has spoken to the youth conference emphasizing the need of military training
for the
defense of the country. His
speech was against the current vogue of non-violence.

Sri Aurobindo: It is good that some one raises voice like

137

that
when efforts are being made to make non-violence the method of solving all
problems.

Disciple: But the insistence on non-violence has succeeded
in disarming the Pathan of the Frontier.
It seems, Gandhi objected to armed volunteers keeping guard over him
while he was in the Frontier
province.

Sri Aurobindo: And what were they expected to do in case there
was an attack? Stand simply?
Disciple: No. They should
die resisting.

Sri Aurobindo: This non-violent resistance I have never been
able to fathom. I can understand an attitude of absolute non-resistance to
Evil, as the Christians say “Resist not the Evil”. You may die
without resisting and accept the consequences as
sent by God. But to resist passively seems to me
meaningless. And to change the opponent’s heart by such passive
resistance is something I don’t

understand.

Disciple:
And the “Modern Review” put in another objection which is worth
considering. The
article accepts that
non-violence may be a good gospel for a great Saint but for the ordinary man to
allow evil to triumph so easily–by
passive resistance–would not be good for the society. There is
no reason to hope that the goonda will change his
mind, or heart, if you allow him to kill you.

Sri Aurobindo: I am afraid, non-violence is being applied to other fields whereas its
extreme application is meant for spiritual life. Non-violence or Ahinsa as a
spiritual attitude and its practice is perfectly understandable and has a
standing. You may not accept it in toto but it

138

has
a basis in the Reality. You can live it in spiritual life but to try to apply
to all life seems too



much. Such an application ignores the great
principle of Adhikar,–qualification even as the
Europeans do. Also it makes no provision for difference of situations.

Disciple:
Mahatma’s point is that in either case, whether with arms or without, you are
prepared to die. Then, why not try to die without arms, since armaments are
piling up in all nations and there is
no
end to where it will lead. In the other case you perpetuate passive-resistance
while in fighting
you perpetuate
killing.

Sri Aurobindo: If you bring in the question of expense then the reasons for
non-violence, we must
admit, are
economic and not ethical. (after a pause)

It is a principle which can be
applied with success if practiced on a mass scale, specially by unarmed people like the Indians, because you are
left with no other choice. But even when it
succeeds it is not that you
have changed the heart of the enemy, but that you have made it impossible for him to rule. That is what happened
in Ireland. There was in Ireland armed resistance
also but that would
not have succeeded without the passive resistance side by side. Such tremendous generalizations like “passive
resistance for all”, “Charkha for all”, “celibacy for
all”
hardly work.

*

17th
January 1939.

Photographs of Harnath (Pagal) and Kusum Devi
were shown to Sri Aurobindo. A declaration from
Matu-

139

shri-Kusum Haranath–that she was the Supreme
Power and that Harnath was one of her forms, was
read.

Sri Aurobindo: That is the Tantric doctrine.

Disciple:
But Harnath was a Vaishnava.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but the doctrine she has proclaimed is not
Vaishnava doctrine, it is Tantric.
Disciple:
Is it true?

Sri Aurobindo: In principle it is true; for the Supreme Shakti
is the Divine Consciousness and all
the
gods are from her. It is she who gives out the gods–Shiva and others. It is
said that even Shiva
cannot act
unless she gives him power to act.

Disciple: Harnath had his decisive spiritual experience in
Kashmir where, it is related, Gauranga
came
to him and gave him the “mission”. But his later disciples regard him
equal to Gauranga.

Disciple: But where is the difficulty? If the consciousness
is ultimately and essentially divine, why
should not Gauranga and Harnath be one in consciousness?

Disciple:
They want to prove him to be as great as Chaitanya.

Sri Aurobindo: Oh, there is competition between the two
Avatars? Did Harnath proclaim himself
as
the Avatar?



Disciple: No, but he behaved like one. There are cases of
very rapid conversions in case of people
who have met him.

140

Sri Aurobindo: I have found that Vaishnava Bhakti-devotional
path–makes for very strong and
rapid
progress.

Disciple: There is a line of Sadhus in Gujarat, who
practice the worship of the Impersonal God. Sri
Aurobindo:
Worship of the Impersonal God?

Disciple:
They do not have any personal God, but they worship One who is everywhere,
beyond
personality. Kabir and some
other Saints believe in this. Even when they take a particular Name of
God, they mean by it something more than the
name. They will say “Rama” but they believe in
various aspects of Rama.

Ek Rama Dashratha ghara Jaye, ek Rama, ghat ghat
me Ek Ramaka submen pasara–ek Rama
suban
te nyara.

Disciple: Does “Nyara” mean the Transcendent? Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the Absolute, the Supreme.

Disciple: The couplet says: one Rama is born in Dashratha’s
house and is therefore subject to
change;
perhaps Kshara, One Rama is present in every heart and one that is
all-pervading and
therefore universal
and one Rama is beyond all.

Sri Aurobindo: That seems to be the same thing as Gita’s idea of Vasudeva that is in
all and
Vasudeva that is the Supreme
Absolute–both are the same. I have seen instances in intense
gyana–knowledge–and intense Bhakti (devotion).
Devotion of the Impersonal Divine may not be
powerful for change; it tends to be more etherialised and the knowledge
that enters into it makes
devotion
less intense or rapid.

141

Disciple: We have heard that you received guidance from
Sri Krishna in your Sadhana: was it from Sri Krishna of the Bindravan or of
Kurukshetra?

Sri Aurobindo: I should think, it was of Kurukshetra Krishna.

Disciple: These distinctions between various personalities
of Krishna, one of Bindravana and
others
are of later growth in Vaishnavism.

Sri Aurobindo: They regard Bala Gopal as the Delight aspect or
the Delight-Consciousness; but
there
are older schools of Vaishnavism that regard Krishna as an Avatar of Vishnu.

Disciple:
Krishna of Kurukshetra is; I suppose, one who gave the Gita.

Sri Aurobindo: One who spoke the Gita is the Vishnu aspect.

Disciple:
Arjuna could not bear his sight and had to ask him to resume his human form.

Sri
Aurobindo:
In the Vishnu Purana
all the aspects of Vishnu are nicely described. It is one of the

Puranas I have read through carefully. I wonder
how it has escaped general notice because it is
magnificent poetry.

There is a humourous passage in it, where a
disciple asks the Guru whether the king is on the
elephant or the elephant on the king (Laughter).

Disciple:
The king must be Rammurthy if the elephant was to be on him.

142

Sri Aurobindo: Then the Guru jumps over the shoulders of the disciple and asks him
whether he is
on the disciple’s back
or the disciple on the Guru’s back (Laughter) Then there is a very fine
description of Jada Bharata.

Disciple:
Is it true? Did Jada Bharata exist?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know. But it sounds very real in the Purana, where it is
placed.

It is also the most anti-Buddhist Purana. Disciple: Then it must have been written late. Disciple: Buddha was born about 500 B. C.

Sri Aurobindo: It is not so early as that; all the puranas are posterior to Buddhism.
They are a part
of the Brahminical
revival which came as a reaction against Buddhism in the Gupta period.

Disciple:
The Puranas are even the earliest, supposed to have been written about the 3rd
or the 4th
century A. D.

Sri Aurobindo: Most probably. In the Vishnu Purana Buddha is
regarded as one of the Avatars of
Vishnu
who came to deceive the Asuras. He is not referred to by name but is called
“Maya-moha”.
Reference to
Budha is very clear; it repeats “Budyaswa! Budhyaswa.” It is a fine
work.

Disciple:
It is said that the Tantras are derived from the Vedas.

Disciple:
There is nothing in the Veda to justify their claim except one solitary Sukta,
called the
Vaki; Ambh-

143

rani–it
is a Valkhilya. There Ambhrani speaks of herself as the creatrix of the Gods.
Of course one
can take Aditi, the
Infinite divine consciousness as the root of Tantra if one likes.

Sri Aurobindo: The principle of Tantra may be as old as the Veda but the known
Tantras are later.

Disciple:
The Vedas are considered the highest authority in India, so everything in India
wants to
peg itself on to the
Vedas–not only Tantra; but art, dancing etc.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t understand this passion for antiquity. What does it matter
when a thing took
place; Truth is
truth whenever it may be found.

Disciple: But the Vedas are considered eternal.

Sri Aurobindo: They are eternal because the source of their
inspiration is eternal.
Disciple: Some one has
said that the eternal Veda is in everybody’s heart.

Disciple:
It is Sri Aurobindo who has said that in his ‘Synthesis of Yoga.’ You are
quoting him to
himself! (laughter)

Sri Aurobindo: The Upanishads came after the Vedas and they put in more plain language
the
same truth that was in the Veda.
In the Veda the language is symbolic.

But the Upanishads are equally great. Even in the
Veda there are passages which clearly show that
the Vedantic Truth is contained in the Veda. But it is surprising that
the readers of the Veda miss
those

144

passages. For instance, the Veda
says–“Riten ritam apihitam”, and then “it is That one”
that is the
source. It is clear that
it refers to the Vedantic truth of the One. Similarly, the Upanishads speak of
the Vedic symbols. The Ishopanishad speaks of the
Vedic gods Sun-Surya and Agni, but you can
see that the significance there is symbolic.

Veda,
Upanishad, Gita all are equally great.

Disciple:
The Europeans thought that it was not possible to believe that the Vedic Rishis
were so
advanced–specially in those
primitive times.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they are so satisfied when they found the historical
interpretation that they
did not care
for many obvious indications. But you must admit that the interpretation
turning Vedic
Gods to gases is
magnificently ingenious.

Disciple: Was it not Paramashiva Aiyar, a Mysorian who
showed that remarkable ingenuity? Sri Aurobindo:
I think that is the man.

Disciple:
He is trying to prove in his book on the Veda that the Veda shows the
conditions of earth
in the glacial
period and then indicates its geological evolution. I gave him up when I came
upon
his explanation of “parame
Vyoman” meaning “trough” and “crest” of the ocean
waves.

Many
riks of Dirghatamas are untranslated even to-day in spite of all ingenious
theories and
interpretations.

Sri Aurobindo: You can’t translate them or understand them
unless you have the key to the
symbolism.

145

19th
January 1939.

Dr.
R’s visit: In course of his talk he remarked in connection with the swelling at
the knee joint that all diseases are of the nature of inflammations.

After
he departed, Sri Aurobindo asked:

“In what sense are
all illnesses inflammations? There could be any satisfactory explanation of
it.”

The
topic of Aldous Huxley’s book “Ends & Means” was taken up by a
disciple.

Disciple:
Huxley suggests two ways of solving the problems of man. One by changing the
existing
institutions of education,
industries, in fact by modifying social, political, economic and religious
institutions. This would bring about a change in
the individual. So far as industries are concerned
he suggests the creation of small units federated
to a Central Organization. Thus it would eliminate
large units which are the roots of all troubles.
The second remedy he suggests is to change the individual and make him, what he
calls “non-attached”, who would practice virtue with
disinterestedness. I believe there is a French
author who also advocates such new types of
industrial institutions.

Sri Aurobindo: That was my idea when I proposed to Motilal to have a spiritual
commune.–I don’t call it Commune but a Sangha–a Community based on spirituality
and living its own
economic life; it
would have its own agriculture, and a net work of such communities spread all
over the country would interchange its products among themselves.

Disciple:
You gave him the idea of the paper also.

10

146

Sri Aurobindo: I now don’t remember. But I asked him to start hand-looms and weaving.

Disciple: He has tried to take up Gandhian plan after he
separated from us; we used to insist on
Swadeshi; now they call it Khaddar.

Disciple:
The financial condition there does not seem as sound as it made to appear.

Sri Aurobindo: Possibly. I do not know now what they are doing. I heard that some
plots were
bought in the Sunderbans
to start agriculture. But as people were getting malaria, it had to be given
up.

Disciple: Is it something like Dayal Bag? I don’t know what
spirituality they are having there. It
seems
as if all their energies are directed to external work and industries.

Sri Aurobindo: That may be due to their large-scale production.
I heard that Anukul Thakur also has started work on the same idea.

Disciple:
Does he not belong to Dayal Bag?

Sri Aurobindo: No. He may belong to what they call, the Radha
Swami School. But he does not
belong
to Dayal Bag.

Disciple:
But to start such a Sangha one must have spiritual realization and may take a
long time to
start.

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. Ordinarily if one is to wait for
spiritual realization it will take time. But all may not have the highest or
supramental realization. Spiritual experience is enough
for the people and that is not difficult to have.
I told M that spirituality must be the basis of the
Sangha. Otherwise, your success will be your
failure. But he does not seem to have listened to it.

147

(After
a pause) There were other religious communities of this sort before. The
Dukhobar
Community in Russia was
very powerful and well organized, strong in its faith. They held together in
spite of all persecution. At last they had to emigrate to Canada. One of their
tenets was nudism,
which the Canadian
Government did not like and they got into trouble. (with a smile) They had at
least solved the weaving problem (laughter).

Then the Mormons were famous in the United States.
The name of the founder was Joseph Smith, a
prosaic name for a prophet. But Bringham Young was a very remarkable
man, who really made the
commune.
Curiously enough one of their tenets, again, was polygamy. Their religion was
based on
the old testament. When they
were made to give their religion they became quite like an ordinary

man.

Mark Twain said that when the chief was
interrogated in the presence of his members he replied
that he knew his children by numbers, not by
their names–it was inconvenient to remember their
names.

There was another community in America which did
not allow marriage among its members.
Disciple:
Do you know if any communities are there in India?

Sri Aurobindo: The Sikhs are the only community organized on a
religion. Thakur Dayananda
established
or tried to establish an order of married Sannyasins.

Disciple: I heard that Anukul Thakur also adopted it for
his disciples.
Sri
Aurobindo:
Disciples are another
matter–they are allowed to marry.
Disciple: I
think, he permitted the Sannyasins to marry.

148

Sri Aurobindo: The same principle is accepted by the
Vaishnavas, who follow the
Nityanand–school–they
accept a Vaishnavi.

Disciple:
All sorts of attempts at collective life seem to have been made and when one
sees them
all, one is driven to
despair like the bald man–who on looking at king Edward VII’s photo with his
shining bald head, said, “I give it
up”–(Laughter) Have you any idea how the supermind will
proceed?

Sri Aurobindo: No idea. If you have an idea the result will be what has been in the
past. We must
leave the supermind to
work it out.

Disciple:
But that sort of work has to be based on love. One must have love for everyone.

Sri Aurobindo: Love is not enough. Something more than love is necessary. Unity of consciousness is more important than love.

Disciple: The trouble is, as soon as one begins something
one tends to become ego-centric. Quarrel
starts like aggravation of symptom in Homeopathy (Laughter).

Sri
Aurobindo:
But love also leads to
quarrel. Nobody quarrels more than the lovers (laughter).
(Looking at X) You know the Latin proverb that each quarrel is a renewal of
love. Love is a fine



flower
but unity of consciousness is the root.

The difficulty is that those who are here receive
something of the Higher power and they become ego-centric, then gather it in
the vital and turn it to their lower nature. They think, it is their own
power. When A came here from Chandranagore he
said, “There at

149

Chandranagore–everybody is a sheep following the
shepherd but here everybody is a Royal Bengal
Tiger. (Laughter)

Disciple:
Somebody also said that here is a zoo where each one is a lion roaring in his
den.

Sri Aurobindo: When we were very few and the Ashram had not grown, B and S used to
convert
all sorts of people to
spirituality, they were great. B once caught hold of a young Tamilian who was
quite sheepish. B used to meet him. After three or
four months of contact it was found, the young
man had become
quarrelsome, indolent and insolent–a great transformation had come over him–(laughter). It is S who made D a public
leader. At any rate, the one thing he did was to make
D get rid of all scruples. “Right and wrong
do not matter, good and bad are nothing” he used to tell.

Disciple:
And now D is trying to live up to it.

Sri Aurobindo: D used to say to Dr. Le Mongnac, “It is impossible for me to fail
because I am a
God-man.” He
said to many people here that he is not afraid because he is Sri Aurobindo’s
disciple.
He got the power from the
Mother and all agree that he is the one man who can do something if he
wanted to. Mrs. R used to write: “What has N
come to–at Pondicherry? He is writing to us “do
this” and “do that”, and finds
fault with our work”. Of course, they were quarreling in Japan also
when they were there. They had different views on
their work.

B came straight from X. X was another great
propagandist. He caught any one he could and made
him do the Yoga–of course, it was his yoga. He
did not think that any such thing as Adhikar was
necessary.

Disciple:
We had a hard tussle with Mahatmaji’s followers

150

over
the question of transcending morality and immorality in a man of spiritual
realization and
resultant conduct.
They always think that going beyond morality means sinking to immorality. All
that does not conform to their moral code is
immoral.

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, all can’t go beyond morality. So their theory is true in
their own field. It
is a mental rule
and so long as one cannot come in contact with the dynamic Divine source of
action in himself, one has to be guided by some
law of conduct–otherwise one might take up the
attitude: “There is no virtue and no sin, so let us sin
merrily.”

What Sri Krishna
says in the Gita” “Sarva Dharman parityajya” “abandoning
all laws of
conduct”–is said
at the end of the Gita and not in the beginning: And then that is not alone;
there is
also “mamekam Sharanam
Vraja,” “take refuge in Me alone.” But before one finds within
oneself
the guidance of the dynamic
Divine, one has to have some rule to guide himself. Most of the people
have to pass through the Sattwa stage. It is only
very few that can start above it and the moral rule
is true so far as most people are concerned.

Disciple:
Can one say that the psychic being always wants transformation? There are
people who
believe that the psychic being in evolution would and must
want transformation. Only the Atman–the
spirit–can merge into laya in the infinite. Can not the developed psychic
being turn to
Laya–merging into the
infinite?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it can; it depends on whether it is in front or not. If it is in
front then, as I
said, it takes
charge of the nature and then its aspiration will be for transformation. But
the
developed psychic being can take
any other spiritual direction. It depends on what direction the
Divine within chooses. We cannot dictate to the
soul

151

what it shall choose; all are not compelled to
transform their nature.
Disciple: What is the kind
of transformation that takes place?

Sri Aurobindo: The psychic transformation is the first one. Many yogis achieve this
psychic transformation: it is the pure Bhakta-nature. But all spiritual men are
not saints, of course, both can go together, sometimes.

Disciple:
Is there a distinction between saints and spiritual persons?

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, there is; saints are limited by their
psychic nature, but spiritual men are
not.
The saint, generally, proceeds from and lives in the heart-centre. The
spiritual man might live in other higher centres–say, above the head, in the
spiritual consciousness.

Disciple:
It is not quite clear to me–the distinction.

Sri Aurobindo: The saints live in the psychic being, that is, in the Purusha in the
heart but the
spiritual man might
live above the head. I never felt like a saint myself–though Maurice Magre
calls me ‘a philosopher and a saint.’ Krishna,
for instance, was not a saint. A spiritual man may not
always behave like a saint, he may have many other
things in him like Rishi Durvasa.

Disciple:
But saints are nearer to humanity; they are not like the Ishwar-Koti to whom no
laws
apply.

Disciple:
In this yoga one has to fight like Arjuna, in the battle of Kurukshetra,
because it is a yoga of fight and battle.

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily; it depends on the nature of the
being. There are some people, for
instance,
who when they meet the hostile forces in the vital or in dream

152

begin
to fight, while there are others who call for protection. If one has the
psychic attitude one
need not fight.
Fighting is for the mental and the vital man; in the case of the mental type
the fight is with ideas.

Disciple:
Some people regard quarreling with the Divine as the psychic way.

Sri Aurobindo: In that case, many people are psychic in the Ashram.

Disciple: I remember X’s letter referring to Ramprasad’s
Song claiming that the Divine must satisfy

his
demand, because he had sacrificed everything for the Divine.

Disciple:
“Claim” based on what? This argument seems to be “you must give
me thing because I
badly want
it.” But what reply you gave to him?

Sri Aurobindo: It was not addressed to me; it was addressed to Krishna.

Disciple:
Then, I will ask him to write to you.

Sri Aurobindo: No, No, don’t do that (laughter). Otherwise, I
will have to be as hard as Krishna.
Disciple:
They say that Shiva is a very kind and generous God.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know if he is very kind to the demons. He gives very
inconvenient boons
and finds it very
difficult to wriggle out through them. He is a God who does not care for
consequences. Generally Vishnu or somebody else
has to come in afterwards to save the situation.
Krishna is hard-hearted, they say.

(The
topic underwent a change.)

Disciple: I am reminded of Sadhaka X whose Sadhana seemed
to be going on very well…who is
now
attracted

153

to Buddhism. I do not know if he has been
attracted to some woman–but there was some such
indication.

Sri Aurobindo: It is sad if it is true. In one of his letters
to Y he wrote that one need not be a
eunuch
in order to be a master of sex………………………………………………..
one should guard his realization.

Realization is something very precious and one
should guard it and live in it like a fortress. One
can go in adding whatever knowledge one wants or
gets but always guarding his realization. For
instance, it is not at all necessary to give up Bhakti to get Jnana.

After
all it is a pity that he should give up the love of Krishna for a mere human
girl. I found it
difficult to go
through his Commentary on the Gita. It is more intellectual, it lacks the life
and the
heart. Otherwise, it was
always a pleasure to read his writings. He seems to have lost the intensity
of mental vision, the seeing mind which he had,
but I thought that it was due to his turning towards
Knowledge.

His
attraction towards Buddhism is understandable, because to the European rational
mind its
rationalism has an appeal.
It was first through Buddhism that Europe came to and began to know
India. Blavatsky found Theosophy on Buddhism. Next
they understand Shanker in Europe and for
many years the Europeans thought there was nothing in India except
Shanker’s Adwaita. But if X has taken to Buddhism his sex abhoration is not
justifiable. Buddhism is the most exacting path. It
is most unindulgent, severe and dry; it is a path
of Tapasya.

Disciple:
He had perhaps great mental pride.

Sri Aurobindo: May be also vital over-confidence. Disciple: He said to Y that sex was not a problem for him.



Sri Aurobindo: That is over-confidence. Perhaps in course of Sadhana some opening has
taken
place in the vital.

Disciple:
But can a Sadhaka fall like that after such fine realizations as he had?

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean by realizations? There is always the possibility of
being Yoga
Bhrashta (fallen from
yoga).

20th
January 1939.

After
discussion about local affairs, Sri Aurobindo:
I find X’s letter to Y is written with his usual
clear vision. He advises Y to guard against mixing up his own feeling of
personal wrong with the
legitimate
decision not to shake hands with one who has wronged the Guru. About A he says,
“these people like A, when they
take to yoga it is more ornamental than anything else”. It is a fine
phrase “ornamental yoga”.

Disciple
(giving a turn to the talk): Nothing seems to have come out of Chamberlain –
Mussolini
interview. Both parties
say, they are satisfied with the results.

Sri Aurobindo: I can’t understand England’s policy. I do not know what she is after.
France is
being led by England; she
is her tail. It is said that Mussolini is waiting for France’s victory, then he
will present his terms to France.
France’s victory in Spain will be dangerous for France. But it is
very difficult to see how England profits by
this. For as soon as Italy and Germany have crushed
France the next victim will be England. England
knows very well Mussolini’s ambition to create an
Italian empire. And that means he will try to
regain all that once belonged

155

to Italy. England is deliberately raising Hitler
and Mussolini against France and letting her down. I do not know why unless the
three want to share the empire of France and then England may try to
put Hitler and Mussolini against each other. That
may be her selfish, traditional policy, but it is a
very risky game.

Disciple: But is it possible? Can England remain aloof when
France breaks with the other powers?

Sri Aurobindo: Why not? Chamberlain has said that as long as England’s interest are
not involved she is not obliged to fight. England will say that Italy’s demands
have not been satisfied and so she
has
gone to war and Germany has joined her. There was no aggression on her part;
so, England is
not obliged to come
to the aid of France; and number of excuses could be given. Blum told a friend
who is also a friend of Daladier that he had to
betray Czechoslovakia because Chamberlain told
him that he will support him as it is diplomatically possible, but in
case of war France should not
count
on England.

Disciple:
I wonder why Flandin wants to support France when Blum is against him. You know
Flandin even sent telegram to
Mussolini conveying his congratulations. Hitler counts Flandin as a
friend–he intends to join the Rome-Berlin axis
and thus keep out England!

Sri Aurobindo: Italy shall demand after the Spanish question is settled. Italy is
almost sure to
claim Tunis, Nice,
Jibouti. Is Flandin prepared to give them? Italy wants her empire in Africa. So,
Tunis and Jibouti are essential for
her to be the master in the Mediterranean. Blum is incapable; it



was
he who applied non-intervention in the Spanish question.

At
present it seems two people are flourishing their arms against everybody and
the rest are
somehow trying

156

to
save themselves. The one man who has seen through the whole thing is Roosevelt,
but he is too far and he is not sure of the support of the American people.

Disciple:
What about Russia?

Sri Aurobindo: Russia is unreliable. One does not know its military strength. At one
time she was
supposed to have the
biggest air-force. But according to Hindenberg it does not seem to be so.

Disciple: Jawaharlal says that Hitler and his generals did
not expect the non-resistance–which they
met–from Austria. They were all very much surprised.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the generals were opposed to Hitler, for
they were not prepared to fight. Now
Hitler
will say: “Have you seen that I am right? Things have happened as I told
you.”

Disciple: Jawaharlal said that the threatened attack
against Czechoslovakia was mainly bluff.
Sri Aurobindo: It can’t be a reliable news; the Germans are too disciplined for that.

Disciple: There is some trouble in Holland, and Germany is
threatening to cut off all trade with her
and establish trade-route through Antwerp and not Amsterdam.

Sri Aurobindo: If that takes place that will make Chamberlain
fight in spite of himself,–England
does
not want any German navy in the North Sea. But Germany won’t do that unless she
wants war
with England.

The
topic was changed now

Disciple:
When X was working here some new sadhaka met him and asked him: “Who are
the
advanced sadhaks here?”–He
replied: “I don’t know.” Then when he was repeatedly asked he said:
I will tell you, but you must tell it to nobody.
There are only two advanced sadhaks here,…you and
I (laughter).

Sri Aurobindo: This instance of ‘two’ reminds me of a joke of Hugo. Balzac said to a
friend that
there are two men who
know and write French: myself and Hugo. When that was reported to Hugo
he said: “That is alright, but why
Balzac?” (laughter)

There
is another story of a lady who believed the doctrine of eternal hell or
heaven–according to
which people
will either go to heaven or to hell. Some one asked her: Do you know where the
people will go? She said: All will go to hell,
except myself and the minister–meaning the
clergyman, but I have doubts about the minister. (laughter)

Disciple:
Very similar is the case of Dr. R. who is here; when he first came here I asked
him about
homeopathy. He said: You see, there are four top-most men in
the line. One Dr. so & so in Calcutta,
other two are there and I came here. (laughter)



21st
January 1939.

Dr.
R’s visit today

Dr. R: Do you feel the pain (in the knee-joint)
still? Sri Aurobindo: Yes.

Dr. R: That is because you are moving the leg
after a long time; it will disappear when you are
accustomed to it.

158

Sri Aurobindo: Accustomed to the pain! (laughter)

Talk
then turned to the world-war and the Congress. Pattabhi was elected President.
Patel wanted
to settle at Rajkot or
go to East Africa.

Disciple: I
am afraid if Patel goes to East or South Africa the Indians there would be
shot.

Sri Aurobindo: Instead of Patel going there to Africa it is better that Gandhi should
go to Hitler.
Hitler will say to
Mahatma: You follow your inner voice Mr. Gandhi, I my own. There is no reason
to say that he would be wrong, for my inner voice may be good and necessary for
me, while it may
not be so for
another man. The very opposite may be good and necessary for another man. The
Cosmic Spirit has one thing for Hitler and may
lead him in the way he is going, while it may decide
differently in another case.

Disciple: That may lead to a clash between the two and the
breaking of the instruments.
Disciple: What of that?
Something good may come out of it.

Disciple:
That might lead to fatalism, belief in destiny.

Sri Aurobindo: It may. There have been people who have believe
in fate or destiny or whatever
you
may call it. Napoleon III used to say: “So long as something is necessary
to be done by me it
will be done in
any case; when that necessity will cease, I shall be thrown on the wayside like
an
outworn vessel.” And that is
what exactly happened to him.

Napoleon
I also believed in fate.

Disciple: When somebody asked Napoleon I, why did he plan
if he believed in fate, he said: “It is
also fated that I should plan.”

159

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. All men who have been great and strong believe in some higher
Force, great
than themselves, moving
them. Socrates used to call this Daemon–man’s divine being. It is curious
how sometimes even in small things one depends on
this voice. Once Socrates was walking with a disciple. When they came to a
place where they had to take a turn, the disciple said, “let us take this
route.” Socrates said: “my daemon asks
me to take the other.” The disciple did not agree and
followed his own route. After he had gone a
certain distance he was attacked by some pigs and
thrown down by them.

There
are some who do not follow the inner voice but an inner light. The Quakers
believed in that.



Disciple:
Do they see the Light?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know; but some one has said: “see that your light is not
darkness.” The
strange thing is
that this inner voice does not give any reason; it only says: “do this; if
you do not
do that, bad results will
follow.” Sometimes, strangely enough bad results do follow if you don’t
listen to it. Lele used to say that whenever he
did not follow the inner voice he had pain and
suffering.

Disciple:
But many kinds of voices are there according to the forces on different planes.
I believe it
is extremely difficult
to distinguish between the right or the true inner voice and false one. There
may be voices either from the mental or the subtle
physical planes.

Moreover,
in the same person the voices may differ.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite true. Hitler’s friend said about him that what Hitler said today
be
contradicted tomorrow. I also
heard a voice which asked me to come to Pondicherry; of course, it
was the inner voice.

Disciple:
Can not one be mistaken?

160

Sri Aurobindo: It was impossible to make a mistake about or disobey that voice. There
are some voices about which there can be no possibility of any doubt or
mistake. Charu Chandra Roy wanted
me
to go to France–so that we may have no further trouble. When I arrived at Chandranagar
he
refused to receive me and shoved
on to Moti Roy.

Disciple:
But why should he receive you?

Sri Aurobindo: Because as a revolutionary he was obliged to do
so.
Disciple: Was he a revolutionary?

Sri Aurobindo: Good Lord, we were together in jail and perhaps
his jail experience frightened
him.
At the beginning he was a very ardent revolutionary.

Disciple: Nolini says he was weeping again in the jail. The
jail authorities thought that he could not be a revolutionary (laughter) and so
let him off.

Sri Aurobindo: No, that was not the reason. It was by the intervention of the French
Government,
I think, that he got his
release. Barin one day walked into his house, gave him a long lecture on
revolution and converted him in one day.

Disciple: I
heard that Nivedita also was a revolutionary, is it true?

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean? She was one of the revolutionary leaders. She went
about
visiting places in India to
come in contact with the people. She was open and frank and talked
about her revolutionary plan to everybody. When
she used to speak on revolution it was her very
soul that spoke, her true personality used to come

161

out. Yoga was yoga of
course, but it was as if that sort of work was intended for her: that was fire
if

you
like. Her book “Kali–the Mother” is very inspiring, but it is
revolutionary and not non-violent.
She
went about among the Thakurs of Rajputana trying to preach them revolution. At
that time
everybody wanted some sort
of revolution. I met several Rajput Thakurs who had revolutionary
ideas, unsuspected by the Government. One Thakur
Ramsingh was afterwards caught in our movement and put to jail. He suddenly
died out of fright. But he was not a man to be frightened.
They may have poisoned him. You know Moropant
afterwards turned moderate. More than one
Indian army were ready to help us. I knew a Panjabi Sentinel at Alipore
who spoke to me about the
revolution.

Once
Nivedita came to Baroda to see the Gaekwad and told him that his duty was to
join the
revolution and she said to him: if you have anything to ask you
can ask Mr. Ghose. But the Gaekwad never
talked politics with me afterwards. But thing I could not understand about
Nivedita
was her admiration for
Gokhle. I wondered how a revolutionary could have any admiration for
him. Once she was so much exercised when his life
was threatened. She came to me and said: Mr.
Ghose, it is not one of your man that is doing this. I said: No. She was
much relieved and said: then it must be a free lancer.

The first time she came to see me she said,
“I hear Mr. Ghose, you are a worshipper of Shakti?”
There was no non-violence about her. She had an
artistic side too. Khaserao Jadhav and myself
went to receive her at station at Baroda. She saw the Dharamshala on the
station and exclaimed:
“how
beautiful!” Looking at the new College buildings she uttered: “how
ugly!” Khaserao said:
She must
be a little mad!

11

162

Disciple: The college building is supposed to be an imitation
of Eton.
Sri
Aurobindo:
But Eton has no Dome.

Disciple:
It is a combination of modern and ancient architecture.

Sri Aurobindo: At any rate it is an ugly dome. The Ramkrishna Mission was afraid of
her political
activities and asked
her to keep her activities separate from the mission.

Disciple:
What about her Yogic Sadhana?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know; whenever we met together we spoke about politics and
revolution.
But her eyes showed
power of concentration and a capacity for going into trance. She had got
something in her spiritual life.

Disciple:
She came to India with idea of doing Yoga.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. But she took up politics as part of Vivekananda’s work. Her book
is one of
the best on Vivekananda. Vivekananda himself had ideas about
political work and fits of revolution. Once
he had a vision which corresponded to something like Maniktola Garden. It is
curious that many Sannyasins at that time had
thought of India’s freedom. Maharshis young
disciples were revolutionaries. Yoganands’ Guru had also such ideas.
Thakur Dayananda was also one such. (turning to a disciple)

Do you know one Mr.
Mandal?

Disciple:
The one with spectacles.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is he who introduced me through someone
else to the Secret Society, where I came in contact with Tilak and others.

*

163

22nd
January 1939:

Sri
Aurobindo opened the topic by asking:–“What about D’s fast?”

He
was told yesterday that D was going to fast on his birth-day i.e. to-day. But
he had forgotten all
about it.

Disciple: I hear he has taken bread and butter in the
morning and at mid-day a light meal. Sri
Aurobindo:
Fasting with bread and milk!

Disciple:
There are people who believe that bread and milk can be taken while fasting.
(Laughter)

Sri Aurobindo: That is also the custom in Bengal, I believe. That reminds me of a
story. Nevinson
went to see Tilak
and met him in Dhoti. While describing the meeting he said: Mr. Tilak received
me naked in his cloth. (laughter)

By
this time another disciple came and seemed to be bubbling with news.

Sri Aurobindo: What is the news? Radio: help. a louse in Stalin’s head! Socialize it.
then the rest
will follow.

Disciple
recounted two fine jokes about Russia from ‘Inside Europe.’ Then he said:–

I looked up the book; Lindbergh says that soviet
air-fleet is not as powerful as it is thought.
Sri Aurobindo: In what way?

Disciple: I
don’t know.

Sri Aurobindo: That is very vague. Does he mean that the aeroplanes are not of sound
material, or
that the pilots

164

are
not well-trained? If he says only that much, that does not give any knowledge.
In the fight
between Russia and Japan
in the frontier, the Japanese admitted that the Russian artillery was
remarkable, it does not miss the mark but the
infantry is not good; for when they got very good opportunity they did not take
advantage of it. While the Japanese army is, perhaps, the best in the
world. In spite of overwhelming numbers against
them in China, they have been able to conquer Chang kai-shek trumpet, that he
would defeat the Japanese in a very short time. They did not reply but at the
end of each defeat the Japanese are further than before.

Disciple: They say that the Japanese are not good in the
air. They miss their aim many times.

Sri Aurobindo: I do not know about that. A pilot requires at a
time concentration on many points.
The
Japanese are good at concentrating on one thing at a time.

Disciple:
Mussolini is asking all Italian firms to close down at Jibuoti, and thus create
dissatisfaction. He is trying to cut
off the railway connecting Jibouti and Abbyssinia and make
another line through Eritria to Asmara.

Sri Aurobindo: That would not make France give up Jibouti
because it is an important seal-link between France and her eastern colonies.
Even if Flandin and the Premier wanted to give it up the
French people won’t.

Disciple:
Yesterday we had talk about hearing the voice: is there any standard by which one
can
judge whether it is a true voice?

Sri Aurobindo: What standard? There is no such standard. How can
you judge where it is right or
wrong?

Disciple:
Then is Hitler who says, “I heard a voice and I follow it”, right?

165

Sri Aurobindo: Right in what sense? Morally?

Disciple:
He means spiritually, perhaps.

Sri Aurobindo: How can you say his voice is not true? He has seen that by following it
he has
been able to get Austria,
Czechoslovakia and he has been successful in many other things. Then
how can you say it is not a true voice? As I said,
the Cosmic Spirit may want him to go that way.
Even morally, you can’t say that he is immoral. He is very restricted as
regards food and is
supposed to have
no wife or mistress and leads a controlled life in all other respects.
Robespierre was also a moral man and yet he killed many people.

Disciple:
But then, what is meant by the ‘true voice’?

Sri Aurobindo: That is the psychic voice. But the spiritual point of view is quite
different. There is
no question of
right or wrong in it. One goes above all those standards and looks from that
plane.
But for that it is essential
to have the perception–say feeling of the Divine in all. Then one can see
Divine in all, veiled behind the Gunas. From that
plane one finds that Gita is right in what it says
about the Gunas: that man is made to act by the
action of the Gunas. There was an angry Sannyasi
who came to the Kali Temple at Calcutta. Ramkrishna said about him:
“he is a Tamsik Narayanan.”
But
he could not keep that standard when another vedantin came there and had a
concubine with
him. He asked the
vedantin: why do you keep the concubine? The Vedantin replied: every thing is
Maya, so what does it matter what you do, or not
do? Ramkrishna said: “I spit on your Vedanta.”

But
logically, the Vedantin was right. So long as you believe everything to be Maya
you can do as
you like. But how will
you say which is right? For instance, what will you say about Curzon’s
action?

166

Disciple:
About Bengal partition?

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, was he right? He
thought he was quite right in what he was doing, while

others
thought he was wrong. And yet, but for his action India would not have been
half as free as she is to-day. So, the Cosmic Spirit may have, after all, led
him to do it to bring this result. There is
a Cabalist prophesy: the golden age will come when the Jews will be
driven off and persecuted
every
where. So, Hitler may be bringing that about. There are so many ways of looking
at a thing.
For instance, this
American lady thinks, perhaps, that she is paying us a big sum, but we call it
a
joke.

Disciple: Then, can one say that one has no
responsibility. One can do as one likes–, in that case
one becomes a fatalist.

Sri Aurobindo: No, one can’t do what one likes. Every one is not Hitler and can’t do
what Hitler does, because it is one’s nature that makes one do things. Your
question reminds me of the story of
my
grand-mother.

She said: ‘God has made such a bad world. If I
could meet Him I would tell what I think of Him.’
My grand-father said: ‘Yes it is true. But God has
so arranged that you can’t get near Him so long
as you have any such desire in you’ (laughter).

When we say: Hitler is possessed by a vital force
it is a statement of fact, not a moral judgment. It is clear from what he does
and the way he does it.

I remember a young Sanyasi with
long nails came to Baroda. He used to stay under trees. Deshpande and myself went to see him. Deshpande asked him: what is the
Dharma, the standard of
action? He
replied, “There is no such standard. It is the Dharma of the thief to
steal because that is
his nature.
Deshpande was very angry when he heard that; I said it is only a point of view.

167

But
all that does not mean that there is no consequence for one’s action. As Christ
said, offence
come but woe unto him
by whom the offence cometh. There is a law of being which throws upon you the
murder, persecution etc., when you inflict suffering on others out of self-will
the suffering
will come back to you,
that is the law of Karma.

Disciple:
S used to quote to me the famous verse of Duryodhana. “Janami, Dharmam
nacha me
pravrittih” I know what
is the Dharma but I can’t gather force to do what I should do.

Sri Aurobindo: “You have the other verse. “seated in my heart as Thou
directest, I act”.*

The
question comes up seriously when you want to change yourself or change others.
Then you say
“this should not
be” and “that should go”–etc., you introduce a rule of the mind
in the vital, but
when you go above
the mind you come in contact with your Spirit and the nature of that spirit is
Light, Truth, Purity. When you observe discipline it is for the spirit, not for
the sake of the mental
rule. If you
want to attain the standard of purity you have to reject what comes in the way.
So also
about lying. You have to stop
lying if you want the Truth, not because of the mental principle of
right and wrong, but for the sake of the spirit.
There are many parts in Nature: One part may try to
reject things that
are contrary to the change and contradictory to each other, but another part prevents it. As the Roman poet said: I see the
better things but I follow the worse.

Disciple: Vendanta for sometime was by word for hypocrisy.
People used to speak of them as
“Bedantins”–meaning
two sets of teeth,–one for showing and another for chewing

*
[the above in sankrit]

168

like
the elephant. What is the truth of Vama-marga?

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know. It must have been with the idea of taking up forces and
pull them
high up. Even the sexual
act has to be done from a high consciousness. Upanishad also : it is
possible.

But
to go back to the original point about the law of Nature. We have to understand
that all this
does not mean that
there is no moral standard. Humanity requires a certain standard it helps
profess. It is obvious from what Hitler is doing
that he is not serving the forces of Light. He is
serving what the Jews would call “the forces
of unrighteousness”. But from the spiritual point of
view, that may also be necessary. As they say
“it takes all sorts to make the world.”

But
again that does not mean that one should not recognize other planes. For
instance, there is the vital plane whose law is force and success. If you have
the force you win. If you have speed you outrun others. The law of the mind
comes in to act as a balance together to make a mental-vital
standard. If you go above then you come to a
point where Gita’s “Sarva Dharman parityajya”
becomes the principle. Sharanam Vraja becomes the
principle. But there if you leave the last
portion, “mamekam Saranam Vraja” “take refuge in Me
alone”–then you follow your ego and you
fall and became either an Asura, or a lunatic or an animal. But even
the animals have a sense of
right and
wrong. It is very well shown in Kipling’s Jungle Book. Have you read it?

Disciple:
No.

Sri Aurobindo: There he shows how the pack falls on the one that fails to keep the
standard. By
human contact the
animals develop that sense even more.

169

Mother came and
then after some time departed. Disciple: Is it true that
Supramental Being is Bhagawan?
Sri Aurobindo: All are
Bhagwan, all are Divine.

Disciple:
That is potential or say, veiled Bhagawan; otherwise we have to accept that
world is
perfect even as it is.

Sri Aurobindo: It is perfect as it could be perfect at present.

Disciple: That is to say a more perfect perfection has to
be attained yet.
Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, it has to be.

*

23rd
January 1939.

Disciple: My friend X is hesitating to put you a question;
but he is puzzled by what he thinks as the
contradiction in what you said yesterday about Gunas.

Disciple:
You said that a man like Hitler does what he does because of the action of the
Gunas, the
modes of nature. In
other-words he does what the Cosmic Spirit makes him do and yet he is
individually responsible for his actions. It seems contradictory.

Sri Aurobindo: That is generally the case when you state some Truth you have to
express it in contradictory terms (laughter). Truth is not always consistent
But the contradiction you notice does
not
mean that there is no responsibility, or no morality, no right, no wrong. The
individual is responsible, for, he accepts the action of the Gunas of nature.

170

Disciple:
But it is the Cosmic Spirit that makes him accept it, is it not?

Sri Aurobindo: No. The Cosmic Spirit does not act directly. It acts through the
Nature. The
Cosmic Spirit acts not
through the true individuality but through the individual in Nature. It acts
through personality and personality is not the
person. Personality is something formed of the
mental vital and physical nature. This personality is responsible
because it accepts the Gunas–the
modes
through ego and Nature. As I said, the Cosmic Spirit works through Nature and
not direct.

Disciple:
But the Cosmic Spirit works its purpose through the individual, by making him
carry out its intention.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but that does not mean that the individual
is not responsible. The Cosmic is
and
contains both good and evil.

Disciple:
Then it is the Cosmic Spirit that is responsible for the evil.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the Cosmic Spirit that is responsible for
both–good and evil, you can’t say it
is
responsible for one and not the other. Through both–good and evil–and their
struggle between
Light and Darkness,
the Cosmic Spirit works out its purpose in evolution.

Disciple:
For example, Duryodhana thought, in the Kuruksetra battle, that he was in the
right. He
did not know that he was
leading to the destruction of his own family.

Sri Aurobindo: But the Cosmic Spirit is not in evolution, while
the individual is in evolution. The
individual
progresses in his evolution by his nature,–he evolves through his nature.

Disciple:
Can the individual refuse or reject the Gunas?

171

Sri Aurobindo: Certainly. The individual can refuse to submit to nature. For example,
Arjuna refused to act accordingly to his nature and eighteen chapters of the
Gita had to be told to him to
make
him fight.

Disciple:
Even though the Cosmic Spirit had already slain the warriors, yet Arjuna was
asked to be
the instrument.

Sri Aurobindo: Real liberation comes when the Purusha awakes and feels himself
separate from
nature, not bound by it
but free and lord.

Disciple: But generally the Purusha is bound.

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, normally the Purusha consents to the action of Prakriti but
he can
withdraw his consent and stand
apart. He can be free by getting out of evolution i. e. by being free
from the working of ego and nature-personalities.

Disciple:
When the freedom of the Purusha is won then it becomes possible for the
individual to
look beyond the Cosmic
Spirit to the Transcendent, and act in the Cosmos according to the will of
the Transcendent–Is it so?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, that is to say, instead of being an instrument of ignorant nature
you become
the instrument of the
Divine.

Disciple:
Do you mean by the Cosmic Spirit the Impersonal Consciousness?

Sri Aurobindo: No, The Cosmic Spirit is a Personality–not in the narrow sense of
personality; it is
both static and
dynamic.

Saguna and nirguna,–the Nirguna supporting the
Sagun.
Disciple: You said that the psychic being also is a
personality.
172

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the psychic being also is a Psychic
Purusha.
Disciple: Does the psychic being develop from birth to
birth?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not the psychic being itself that develops, but it guides the
evolution of the
individual being by
increasing the psychic element in the nature of the individual. It is these
personalities in nature that are bound.

Disciple: It is said that psychic being is a spark of the
Divine.
Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes.

Disciple:
Then it seems that the function of the psychic being is the same as that of
Vedic Agni
who is the God of Fire,
who is the leader of the journey.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. Agni is the God of the psychic and, among
other things that it does, it also
leads
the upward journey.

Disciple:
How does the psychic carry the personalities formed in this life into another
life?

Sri Aurobindo: After death, it gathers its elements and carries them onward to another
birth. But it
is not the same
personality that is born. People easily misunderstand these things, specially
when
they are put in terms of the
mind. The past personality is taken only as the basis but a new
personality is put forward. If it was the same
personality, then it would act exactly in the same
manners and there would be no meaning in that.

Disciple:
Does the experience of the Cosmic Spirit correspond to what you have termed the
“Overmind”?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but you can have the experience of the Cosmic Consciousness on
any other
level of consciousness

also.
Generally, you have it on the level of the Higher Mind where you feel the two
aspects static and dynamic as separate. But as you go above, you find the
Overmind overreaches all the other levels and there the two aspects are
gathered together and combined in the same consciousness
(turning to X) So you see, Hitler is responsible
so long as he does not feel that he is not Hitler.

Disciple:
But does he feel that he is responsible?

Sri Aurobindo: He feels that he is responsible not only for himself but for the whole
of Germany.

When
Hitler began he was not like that. He was considered an amusing crank and
nobody took any notice of him. But his latest photograph shows him like a
criminal, he seems to be going down the
darkness very fast. It is the vital possession that gives him his size
and greatness. Without this
possession
he would be a crudely amiable person with some mental hobbies and
eccentricities. This
possession
becomes possible because the psychic being in him is undeveloped. There is
nothing in his being that can resist the vital force.

Mussolini has, comparatively, a developed psychic
being and a very strong vital being, But in his
last photograph he seems to have weakened. Either he is physically
unwell or is aging or perhaps
he has
misused his powers.

Disciple:
Hitler feels responsible for all the Aryans, what ever that may mean.

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, the only Aryans are the Germans. It is
they who feel the responsibility
and
bear the consequences.

Disciple:
Can one be free if one acts without feeling responsibility?

174

Sri Aurobindo: You can’t get rid of responsibility like that,
even though you may say, you are not
responsible.

You
must become free if you want to be free from responsibility. There are three
ways, or rather
several ways, of
attaining that freedom. One is by the separation of the Purusha from Prakriti
and
realizing it as free from it; another is by realizing the Self, The
Atman or the Spirit, from the Cosmic
movement. Thirdly by the identification with the Transcendent Above, i. e. by
realizing the
Parmatma. You can also
have this freedom by merging into the Shunyam through Buddhistic
discipline.

Disciple:
In the experience through the first and second method does the Purusha remain
the
“witness?”

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. I may be witness in the first method because the
Purusha
separates himself from
Prakriti and is then the witness not taking part in action.

But
in the second kind of realization the Purusha need not be the witness of the
universe, or the
universal movement.
The Self may remain ingathered without witnessing anything. There are many
conditions into which the spirit can pass.

A certain kind of Nirvana
is necessary even for our Yoga. That is to say, the world must become, in a
way, nothing to you because as it is constituted it is the work of Ignorance.
When you realize

something of that then only can you enter into and
bring into existence the true creation, the world of Truth or Light here.

Disciple: When the Gita says: “You will find the self
all and all in the self and then in Me”–what
Self does it speak of?

175

Sri Aurobindo: It is the Brahmic Consciousness. That is to say, you see one
Consciousness in all
and all
contained in the One Self and then you rise above to the realization of One
that is both personal and impersonal and is above both.

Disciple: Is it true that man with spiritual bent are born
with “Adhikara – qualification – for it?
Sri Aurobindo: Yes.

Disciple:
Can one acquire Adhikara – such qualification, i. e. if one has not the
Adhikara at first
can one get it by
some means?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, A man can acquire Adhikara. That is what we mean when we say
“he is not
ready” and when
we say “he can prepare himself” it means he can get the Adhikara.

Disciple: Such a man can also acquire Adhikara by the
company of Saints. Sri Aurobindo: Yes,
of course.

Disciple:
One gets tired of this problem of manifestation. That is to say, it is a very
complicated
and long process to manifest
the Divine in oneself and in one’s life.

Sri Aurobindo: Being tired is not enough. One must have the power to be free, either
by moving
out of evolution, that is
to say, one must get the power to act from beyond the evolution.

Many yogis when they go beyond into the Spirit or
the Cosmic consciousness, allow Cosmic nature
to act through them without any sense of individual responsibility. They
remain concentrated in, or
identified
with the

176

Higher
Consciousness uncontrolled And you find as X found that the spiritual man uses
foul
language: of course, the yogi or
the spirit in him is not bound by the rules of decency. That is why
such yogis act like Jada, Pishacha or
Bala–allowing nature to play freely in them.

When
one has attained the higher consciousness then, as the Upanishad says, one does
not regret: I did not do that which was good, or I did this which is evil. It
is not that all yogis act that way. But
some of them know the reason, or the necessity–why they act in a
particular way, at a particular
time.
Only, he is not bound by his action.

Another difficulty
arises because most of the yogis are very bad philosophers. And so they cannot
put their experiences in mental terms. But that does not mean that they have no
real spiritual
experience. They do
not want to acquire intellectual development; for, they wanted only to reach a
Higher consciousness and they are satisfied with
that. When you look for things the yogi has never
tried to have then you get disappointed like the
American lady who object to Raman Maharshi’s
spitting and biting his nails. That has nothing to do with his
spirituality.

Disciple:
Can one say that the aspect of Sat–Pure Being-Consciousness–Chit-is absent?

Sri Aurobindo: No, even in what you call Being Consciousness is
there; only, it is held back, or is
inactive
so to say, while in Chit that aspect is in front. In these matters using mental
terms always
creations confusion
because I have so often said that Sat, Chit Ananda is the prime Reality and no
part of it can be thought of as separate.

Disciple: The difficulty arises when one sees many
experience of different system of Sadhana then
one finds great difficulty of choosing between them.

177

Disciple:
But does one choose these things with the mind?

Disciple:
There is no other go. Can not the story of different systems lead one to
knowledge?

Sri Aurobindo: It can help in making an approach to the path of knowledge. Philosophy
is an attempt to explain to the human mind what is really behind it. But to the
western mind thought is
the highest
thing. If you can think out an explanation of the universe you have reached the
goal of
mental activity. They use the
mind for the sake of using it–that leads nowhere. (Turning to X) So,
you see, the universe is not a question of logic
but of consciousness.

Disciple: But is the story of philosophy indispensable? Sri Aurobindo: Not at all.

Disciple: I
would like to know everything by experience.

Sri Aurobindo: You can know what philosophy preaches, or has to say, by direct
experience and
something more which
philosophy cannot give.

Disciple: The Sankhya division between Purusha and Prakriti
in one sense, is very sharp and so it
helps
one to get away from the bondage of Prakriti.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is categorical. They believe in the two, Purusha and Prakriti,
as the final
elements. Sankhya and
Buddhism were both first understood and appreciated by Europe,–Sankhya
because of its sharp distinction between Purusha
and Prakriti, which they believe to be
jada–inconscient.
Prakriti, in Sankhya, is jada and it is the light of the consciousness of
Purusha
that makes Prakriti appear
conscious. They believe that even Buddhi–the intelligence–is also
jada–inconscient.

178

We
in our yoga need not accept it. While the Europeans liked Buddhism for its
strong rationalism.
Its logic led it
up to Shunya–the state of non-being, which is its aim to reach. There is also
a strong
note of Agnosticism in it
which appeals to the Europeans. It is something that hangs in the air; for the
base is Shunya–non-being. You don’t know on what basis the whole thing stands.
There is a certain similarity between Science and Sankhya; for in science they
believe that evolution begins with the jada, the inconscient and goes up the
scale of consciousness.

Disciple: We have so much darkness in us that we can’t
empty it by our own efforts. At times, it
seems that even a little light will do.

Sri Aurobindo: No, little light, a mere candle-like mental illumination, will not do.
There must be
full sun-light. And
that is very difficult to attain and bring down. It is a slow process, but that
is
what we mean when we say:
“You must have an opening.” If you have an opening, gradually, more
and more light can come.

Disciple:
How can we accept the light without knowing it?

Sri Aurobindo: That is to say, something in you does not want
it, otherwise there is hardly any
difficulty.
Of course, so far as the world is concerned it has always refused to accept the
Light
when it came.

It
is a test to know whether the world is ready or not. For example, when Christ
was sentenced
Pilate had a right to
pardon one of the four condemned, and he pardoned Barbaras. Nowadays, they say
that Barbaras was not a robber, but was a national hero, and he was a sort of
Robinhood. But whatever that may be, it is a fact that the romantic robber was
preferred to the Son of God; or the
political
opponent to the preacher of the Truth.

179

Disciple: You say about experience, but I have no
experience. All I feel is pressure at the time of
meditation.

Sri Aurobindo: You at least feel the pressure.

Disciple:
But how to know that it is due to the working of the Higher Power?

Sri Aurobindo: If you can wait you will know yourself, or you have to accept it from
the Guru
who has gone through the
experience–that is to say, you have to accept it by Sravana, hearing, and
Manana–meditating upon it.

Disciple:
It is said that ascent and descent take place; how to know it?

Sri Aurobindo: You will yourself know it when it takes place; you can’t miss it.

Disciple:
I hear that the American lady B remained in Ramanashram about a week, in spite
of all
unclean surroundings. She
spent about a hundred rupees a day on her food. Mona says that her
husband’s name does not indicate that he belongs
to an old aristocratic family. He is a rubber
magnet, he is a Lord, and is manufacturing rubber tyres.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t understand why a rubber manufacturer
should be a Catholic.
Disciple: Heirloom, perhaps.

Sri Aurobindo: Which? the tyre or the Catholicism?

Disciple:
What was the lady’s impression about our Ashram?

Sri Aurobindo: She was much impressed and was full of praise for the Mother, and she thought
it
must be a work of genius. She
thinks that genius can work without finances!

180

Disciple: She seems to have contributed something.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, 5 £. Till now the Americans that have come
here are either poor, or rich ones who don’t pay.

Disciple: She seems to have done better than Sir H. who
not only did not pay anything but took a loaf of bread with him! (laughter).

At
this point the Mother came.

Sri Aurobindo: (to the Mother) N wants to know lady B’s impression.

Mother: She
was full of compliments. She was much impressed with the tidiness,
cleanliness., and the beauty in the Ashram. (Then addressing Sri Aurobindo she
said) She is not much more than a
tourist.
She is going to Japan to study with Suzuki. She has much admiration for genius,
probably
because genius does not
require finance.

Here
the topic changed:

*

24th
January 1939.

Sri Aurobindo: turning to X: “Any news?”

Usually
the news of local politics and other subjects used to come through X,

Disciple: No news except that Mahatma Gandhi advises the
Japanese visitor Kagawa to include
Shanti
Niketan and Pondicherry in his itinerary, without seeing which his visit to
India would be
incomplete.

Sri Aurobindo: O that! I have heard about it.

At
this juncture the Mother came and a meditation followed, After the Mother’s
departure Sri
Aurobindo

181

resumed:
“I can give you some news today, The French Ministry seems to be going
against the
political party in power.
It is a mystery how the ministry has suddenly taken this change of attitude.

Disciple: I understand that the leader from Pondicherry
wrote to the Ministry against some official
and the official must have found it out in France. And so, when he came
back here he has taken up
a definite
attitude against the leader and the party.

Sri Aurobindo: There is a Greek saying that when one becomes too powerful he becomes
insolent
and commits excesses and then that strikes against the throne
of God and then the retribution begins.

The leader of the former dominant party was not
like that. He never lost sense of balance, and
never pushed things too far. When his lieutenants asked him to arrest
his political opponents he
refused.

Disciple:
Hitler also has a precipitous rise, he can’t maintain the momentum. He can’t
last very
long.

Sri Aurobindo: There is another famous Greek story about the
tyrant of Syracuse. Do you know
it?

Disciple:
No.

Sri Aurobindo: This tyrant wanted to make friends with another tyrant of Sicily. Both
belonged to Sicily. The latter replied: You are too fortunate. You must
sacrifice something or have some little
misfortune to compensate for your fortune, otherwise, I can’t ally myself
with you. The tyrant of
Syracuse–Polycrites–threw
his most precious ring into the sea as a sacrifice to compensate for his
fortune. The ring was swallowed by a fish and that
fish caught by a fisherman who brought to him.
He got back

182

the
ring. The other tyrant heard about it and said: You are too lucky. I shall
never ally myself with
you.
Polycrites was afterwards killed by his people in revolt. “The ring of
Polycrites” is a
proverbial
expression in English.

The
Roman poet says: the Titans fall by their own mass. There is a similar idea in
India when it is said: the Asuras are too heavy for the earth to bear their
weight. But some Asuras are clever enough
to flourish in spite of proverbs.

Disciple:
Can it be said that the Asuras by their action contradict the law of evolution
or that they
contradict something
fundamental in human nature?

Sri
Aurobindo kept silent for some time and then said: There is no such general
law. The thing is
that the Asura
can’t keep balance. The law that demands balance then strikes.

(Then Sri Aurobindo became silent). After sometime
looking at a disciple he said: “Is your cosmic
problem solved? (in reference to yesterday’s
topic.)

Disciple:
Not until I get the experience. But I have some interesting news from Calcutta.
Mrs. has
been saying to her
relations such a number of lies that they have found it out and say:
“There is
truth on both
sides.”

Sri Aurobindo: But what does Mrs. M. say?

Disciple:
She says that the Ashram tried to keep her child because of her property. We
are short of
money; police
intervention has taken place before also.

Sri Aurobindo: But how can we get the money from the child?
Everybody knows that the property
belongs
to her

183

mother,
and that she is not going to die within a few years. It is not the Ashram that
wanted to keep her; she–the child–wanted to stay of her own accord. And where
was the police intervention? By
saying
that she deprives herself of the credit of having the first who brought in the
police.

Disciple: She says all that to save her face.
Sri Aurobindo: It will take a lot of saving.

After
this there was silence. After some time a Disciple began.

Disciple:
A. B. is supposed to have said that Vivekananda by his idea of service to
humanity,
brought mixture and
spoiled the spirituality that was intended to be cultivated by Ramakrishna.

Sri Aurobindo: In what way?

Disciple:
I don’t know. But was it Ramakrishna’s idea that Vivekananda followed? Was it
Ramakrishna who asked him to do service to
humanity?

Disciple: So far as I remember he said: “Lok hiter
kaj karo.” “Lok hit” “Good of the world”–is not
the same thing as “service to humanity.”

Disciple:
So far as I remember Ramakrishna did not say anything like that. In fact, there
was a great difference among Ramakrishna’s disciples about what Vivekananda was
bringing in. But
some of them
submitted saying: “Vivekananda must know better.” The phrase
“Daridra Narayana”
was
Vivekanand’s.

Disciple:
But some disciples, even though they did not object, did not take any part in
the work.
Brahmananda was one such.
He had a greater realization than Vivekananda.

184

Sri Aurobindo: I think so; he was spiritually higher. I once met Brahmanand when I
went to see
Belur Math. He asked me
about some letters received from “G”. I don’t remember what it was
about. He asked me whether he should do anything
or keep quiet. I asked him to keep silent and not
give any reply.

Disciple: Ramakrishna Mission seems to be more occupied
with social and humanitarian work; I
don’t
know if there is much spirituality in it. My cousin Swami Adwaitananda went
there and was
quite dissatisfied and
came back.

Sri Aurobindo: Plenty of people complain of that. But what work
do they do?
Disciple: Medical relief, famine relief.

Sri Aurobindo: Famine relief is not all the year round. Medical relief is something.

Disciple:
Education also. Now a days in many places of spiritual work they feed the
poor–it is
done as the Seva–Service
to, Daridra Narayana–the poor as Narayana.

Sri Aurobindo: I see no idea in that. What is the use of feeding for one day, when
they have to fast all the year round? You can satisfy your conscience that you
have done something for the poor, I
suppose.
If you could find out the cause of poverty and try to remove that, that it
would be some
real work.

Disciple:
But that is not easy. There are so many difficulties, political, economic etc.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t think it is so insoluble as all that. If you give the people
education–by
education I mean proper
education–not the modern type–and the means, then the problem could be
solved. People in England or

185

France have not this kind of poverty as we have in
India. That is because of their education–they
are not so helpless.

Disciple: Some thousands were fed on the birthday of a holy
man. There were so many people on
this
occasion that they were not allowed to touch him.

Sri Aurobindo: If they were allowed to touch him, he will feel like the President of
America who
had to shake hands with
thousands of people and in the end got an aching of the hand.

Disciple:
These are people who give lot of money for such purposes of temporary utility,
but
curiously enough, we don’t get
financial help. One man actually told me, we don’t require money
because we have buildings.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, that seems to be the impression. Many people
think like the American lady
visitor,
that “the Ashram is a work of genius” and genius can do without money
(laughter). Among
the rich it is
only the minority that pays; mostly it is the poor persons like Miss X who
hardly earns
enough to maintain her
family yet whenever she finds an opportunity she sends us money. There is a
false rumour that we have a lot of money.

*

26th
January 1939.

Disciple:
It seems Barcelona–in Spain–is going. The French people are waking up at the
eleventh
hour.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, democracies are showing such courage at present!

Disciple:
It seems, political ideas and ideals are not worth fighting for. Thousands
fought for
democracy and now

186

they
are in a hurry to give it up. Nothing seems to be permanent in the political
field.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so. All human values are half values–they are relative. They
have no
permanence or durability
about them.

Disciple:
Perhaps, if man became more of a mentalized being, he would understand things
better.

Sri Aurobindo: By being mentalized? No. The difficulty that men do not follow the
principles of
life.

Disciple:
How is that?

Sri Aurobindo: Life compromises between different elements, but mind while acting
alone does
not compromise. Mind takes
up one thing–(one idea, or principles or anything like that)–and makes it
absolute. Mind considers it as apart from and opposed to all other things.

Hagel boasted that in Europe they had succeeded
in separating reason from life and you see their
philosophy–it has nothing to do with life; it is all mental
gymnastics, it does not form part of life.

While in India, philosophy
has always been a part of life; it has an aim.

In the political philosophy of Europe you find, if
they accept democracy, it is only democracy–all the rest is opposed to it. If
monarchy, then it is only monarchy. That is what happened in Greece.
They fought for democracy and opposed aristocracy
and monarchy and in the end oligarchy came
and monarchy–at last they were conquered by the Romans.

Disciple:
Then what is the truth in all these attempts at political organization?

187

Sri Aurobindo: If you want to arrive at something true and lasting, you have to look
at life and
learn from it. That is
to say, you must learn the nature of the opposition and contradictions and then
reconcile them.

As
regards government, life shows that there is a truth in monarchy–whether
hereditary or elective.
That is to
say, there is a man at the top who governs. Life also shows that there is a
truth in
aristocracy, whether it is
of strong or rich men–that of money or intellect.

The current fiction is, it is the majority that
rules. Life also shows that the rule of the kind or of the
aristocracy should be with the consent–silent or
vocal–of the people who form the mass.

In
ancient India, they recognized the truth of these things. That is why India has
lasted through
millenniums and China
also. English politics is successful because they have always found one
man or two who had the power to lead the minority
of the ruling class. During Victorian period it was either Gladstone or
Desrali, and even when the party in power changes in England the other
party that comes to power does not change things
radically. They continue the same policy with a
slight modification.

In
France no government lasts, sometimes it changes within a few days! The new
government is a
repetition of the
one it replaces. Blum is one who wanted to do something radical but he was
knocked out.

Disciple:
Did you see Subhas’s statement?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. He seems to have a queer logic; because the Right has a majority
so, the
president should be from the
minority. And what is the sense in saying: we will fight to the core? I
can understand that kind of idea if you are going
to have revolution. Then there can be no

188

compromise. But once you have accepted compromise
there is no meaning in that statement. One
has to work out on the basis of what one has gained. Satyamurty’s idea
of federation seems all right to me if the States’ people are given some
representation in the centre and the Viceroy exercises no
veto. It would then practically amount to
home-rule.

Disciple: The Viceroy’s long stay in Bombay seems
significant. I think, there is something behind it. He may want to settle the
office-bearers for the federation.

Sri Aurobindo: The Bombay Ministry seems to be working
efficiently. They have escaped the
socialists
trap. These socialists do not know what is socialism.

Disciple: There were many humourous speeches in the
Sindh-assembly. The League has been
exposed.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the Sindh Premier–I always forget his name–seems to be a strong
man and
stands up for his ideas at
the risk of unpopularity. The Sindh Muslims were anxious to join the
Congress. The Congress should try to do something
to make a coalition there.

The
Congress ministries are successful almost everywhere. That is an indication of
the power to
govern if powers are
given.

Disciple:
Only Bengal and Punjab remain under Muslim League influence.

Sri Aurobindo: The Muslim League is not so strong in Bengal–there is the Praja party
there. In
the Punjab Sikandar Hayat
Khan seems to be an able man. Only, in U. P. the Muslim League seems
strong.

Disciple:
I wonder how Fazlul Haque could become the Premier. Perhaps Nazimuddin may be
more capable.

189

Sri Aurobindo: He won’t make a popular figure. Haque can turn as circumstances
require. All
these Muslims of the
League seem to be a lot of self-seekers.

Disciple:
I do not understand why the Congress opened negotiations with the League. It
has been
giving an undue importance.

Sri Aurobindo: How is it that the Congress is so weak in the Punjab?

Disciple:
Because of the Socialists and the old Congress people fighting each other. The
Jayapur
affair is starting again.
Bajaj is going to offer Satyagraha. It seems, Mahatma has given his
approval.

Sri Aurobindo: Since he is a congressman I suppose the Congress will have to back him.
If the
State people get power the
princes will have no work but to sign papers and shoot animals.

Disciple:
Where will they shoot? The forests are being depleted of animals.

Sri Aurobindo: The forests have to be preserved and also the wild life. China
destroyed all her
forests and the
result is there is flood every year.

Disciple:
There are so many Maharajas, Chiefs, Nawabs all over India.

Sri Aurobindo: Germany was like that at one time. Napoleon
swept away half of the number and
the
last war swept off another half. Japan also had many princes but they
voluntarily abdicated their
power.
The Japanese are not greedy for money. They can easily sacrifice if they find
it is their duty to sacrifice–of course, duty to the country.

190

Disciple:
How far back in history do they go?

Sri Aurobindo: The Mikado claims to be the descendant of the
Goddess of the Sun. The Mikado
Maigi
believed in it and he used to do what was necessary after feeling the
inspiration within him.

There are two
types of features among the Japanese: one tall and with a long nose and fine
aristocratic face, and another the ‘Inune’ who came from Australia and
Polynesia. It was the tall

people
with classical features that gave Samurai Culture to Japan. I met a Japanese
painter at
Tagore’s place–he was of
the first type–what magnificent features! The other is the usual
Mongolian type.

Disciple:
The dictator’s psychology is an authority complex. People under the dictator
feel they are
great and that the
dictator–in this case Hitler–is fighting for them, not they who fight for
him.
Perhaps the dictators find a
competitor in God and religion. So they try to crush religion.

Sri Aurobindo: But Mussolini did not crush religion in Italy, though Kemal and Stalin
did.
Mussolini on the contrary has
given more power to the Pope in the Vatican. He has practically
recognized the Roman Church as the State
religion.

Disciple: I read in a newspaper that Kemal in his
intoxicated condition slapped an Egyptian
because he came to a dinner party with a fez on.

Sri Aurobindo: Have you not heard the story of a journalist? Disciple: No.

Sri Aurobindo: Well, a young journalist of Turkey criticized
the government saying; Turkey is
governed
by a number

191

of
drunkards. Kemal came to know of it. Next day, the journalist received an
invitation to dinner.
He was
trembling as to what was coming. After dinner was over Kemal told him: Young
man, you
are quite mistaken in saying
that Turkey is governed by a number of drunkards. It is not true.
Turkey is governed by one drunkard.

Disciple: Kemal at one time tried to play off Italy against
Russia.
Sri
Aurobindo:
But Russia has all
along helped Turkey.

Disciple:
Stalin forced the collectivization of farming among the Ukrainians. The farmers
did not like it. So, to spite the government they collected from the farmers
only what they required for
themselves
for the year; they did not collect the crop for the government. Stalin came to
know
about it. In the meantime the
crop standing in the fields was destroyed by cold and frost. He sent
down his officials and they attached the corn
collected by the farmers as state dues. The result was
famine. The farmers starved and died by the
thousands. Stalin did no help; he allowed them to die.
He was afraid that once he submitted them there
would be no collectivization anywhere.

Sri Aurobindo: That is what happens when socialism comes. Communism is different. If
they had
been successful in carrying
out the original idea of the Soviets then it would have been a great success.
Mussolini at first tried to form corporate state but he also gave it up later
on.

Disciple: The Socialists did not succeed in breaking the
trade-unions in Ahmedabad, which are
under
the Congress.

Sri Aurobindo: Socialism has no chance with the Indian peasant. He will side with you
so long as
you promise him land and want
to end the land-lord system. But once

192

he has got the land no more socialism for him. In
socialism you have the state which intervenes at
every step with its officials who rob money.

Disciple: The officials know the Government machinery and
they so manage to keep the power in
their
hands.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. It is the State bureaucracy that dictates
the policy irrespective of the good of
the
commune. In communism they hold the land for the whole community i.e.–the
whole unit and
each part of it is
entitled to labour and have its share from the produce.

Disciple: In India we have a kind of communism in the
villages. The whole village was like a big
family and the lowest had his right as a member of the family. The
washerman, the carpenter the
black
smith, the barber, all get what they needed.

Sri Aurobindo: That is the only communism that is practicable.
Each such commune can be
independent
and many such units can be scattered all over country and they can combine or
co-ordinate their activities for a common purpose.

*

28th
January 1939.

The
Mother left for the general meditation and the disciples were ready to begin
some topic, but Sri
Aurobindo seemed
mentally occupied with something. He was rather thoughtful and in a mood of
silence. So none ventured to begin. After a few
minutes Sri Aurobindo looked at the company
present and there was spontaneous smile on every face.

Disciple:
X seems to have some news.

193

Sri Aurobindo: Then why does he not spurt out with it? Disciple: There is nothing particular to-day.

Sri Aurobindo: There is a cure for your cold in the “Sunday times”: you have
to get into an
aeroplane, take some
rounds, get down and you are cured.

Disciple:
Permanently?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if the plane comes down with a crash, the cure would be
permanent.
(laughter)

Disciple: One friend V used to put a cotton string into his
nose for his cold.
Disciple: That is a Hatha yogic process.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. They also insert a long piece of cloth into
their intestines and bring it out
through
the anus in order to clean the track.

There
also have been authentic cases of taking poisons like the nitric acid, Hydro
cyanic acid etc.,
without any evil
effect. There are cases of swallowing nails, glass etc..

Disciple: Is it possible?

Sri Aurobindo: There is no question of it being possible, it is actually done.

Disciple:
I wonder how the scientists would explain these phenomena. Somewhere they were
invited to a demonstration but they refused to attend.

Disciple:
They can’t, for fear of their convictions being shaken.

Disciple:
These Hatha yogis who demonstrate these phenomena,

13

194

must
know some process of preventing absorption of these things in the stomach.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they must have the power to stop the action of the poisons and
then eliminate
it. They throw it
out–by vomiting the substance immediately after the demonstration.

Disciple: Perhaps, you know that the Royal Society of
Science refused permission to Sir William
Crooks who wanted to demonstrate the reality of mediumistic phenomena.

Sri Aurobindo: The same thing happened in Germany. In the village Alberfeltz there was
a man who used to train horses to do mathematical sums–(of course, they were
simple operations). He
invited the
scientists; they refused to believe in it. Not only they refused but they
complained to the
Government that it
should be stopped, because the trainer was following unorthodox method of
investigation!

Disciple:
Maurice Materlinck himself went to see it and said, after seeing it, that he
himself did not
believe in it before
he saw it. He examined the animals by giving his own figures and the answers
given by the horses were correct. (Ref. to his
book–“L’ hote inconna”

Sri Aurobindo: They say that animals can’t think or reason. It
is not altogether true. They have an
intelligence
which acts within narrow limits of the needs of their life. These faculties are
latent in
the animals and have not
been developed, that’s all.

The
cats have a language of their own; they utter different kinds of mews for
different purposes. For instance, when the mother leaves her kittens behind a
box, mewing a particular rhythm, then
the
kittens understand that they are not to move from that place till she comes
back and repeats the
mew. It is
through rhythm that they express

195

themselves
and they understand human language if it is every time in a particular rhythm.

Even the donkey who is supposed to be very stupid
is unusually clever. Horses and donkeys were
confined together within an enclosure and the gate was closed to find
out if they could get out. It
was
found that while horses were helpless, it was the donkeys that by turning the
latch opened the
gate.

Why go further,
even in our Ashram the Mother’s cat Chikou was unusually clever. One day she
was confined in a room and it was discovered that
she was trying to open the window in exactly the
same way as the Mother used to do. Evidently she had watched the Mother
doing it before going to the window and taking up the string.

We
had, when we were staying in Rue suffrin, a bitch left by someone in the house
had a room
upstairs with glass
window and a bath-room at one extremity. One day this bitch found herself
locked out. She tried all sorts of devices to enter
the room but could not as the main door and the windows were all closed. As all
attempts failed, she sat down in front of the window and began to
think; how to get in? The way she sat and the
attitude of her sitting showed clearly that she was
thinking. Then suddenly she got up as if saying:
Ah, there is the bath-room door! Let me try it. She
went in that direction. The door there was open
and she got in.

It is the Europeans who make a big difference
between man and animals. The only difference is the
animals can’t form a concept, can’t read or write
or philosophize (laughter).

Disciple:
But they also can’t do yoga.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know that. While Mother and

196

myself
were meditating a cat used to be present. We found that she was getting queer
and was
getting into trance and was
almost on the point of death, but recovered. Evidently, she was trying to
receive something.

Disciple: Maharshi’s cow, Laxmi, is said to bow down to
him. She is even supposed to have been
some
old disciple of his in her previous life and was attached to Maharshi.

*

29th
January 1939.

Sri Aurobindo was in a communicative mood.
Looking at X he said. “Have you read Hitler’s
interview with Col. Beck in the ‘Sunday Times’?

Disciple:
No. What about it?

Sri Aurobindo: It was shouting at each other. It is said that
when Hitler begins to shout his eyes
become
glassy and it means disaster. But in this interview when he began to shout and
eyes turned
glassy, Beck began to
shout louder. Hitler was much surprised to find this unexpected return and
himself toned down.

Disciple:
What was the result of the interview?

Sri Aurobindo: Relations with Poland were not much improved I
suppose. (The topic changed) Sri
Aurobindo
turned to X: “Did you see Subhas Boses’ statement?

Disciple:
Yes, it seems unfortunate that at this time the Congress should be divided.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so. Whenever he has been in authority
there has been trouble. Congress-split
in
Bengal came in his time. He is an intellectual without grasp of the

197

realities. He
talks of India exerting international influence! You are not even a nation and
you talk
of being international! You
have to be first independent. Even in a small affair like the
China-Japanese war, what you have been able to do
is to send an ambulance unit.

Disciple: Our Y who was in Bengal politics has not a very
high opinion about Subhas Bose. He
says,
he is a good lieutenant but can’t be a great leader.

Sri Aurobindo: That has been my impression all along.

Disciple:
It seems as if what he is doing is more for satisfying his ambition for power
and egoism.

Disciple: And all the talk about influencing the votes is
meaningless. They are all trying to
influence
the voters on their side.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so. He says, he stands for principles, but
all the time he is asking ‘vote for
me’.

Disciple:
But he is very sincere and honest.

Disciple:
Many leaders are that.

Disciple:
Not in Bengal–they are almost all dishonest.

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean by sincerity? Sincere means ready to suffer for the
cause and
honest means, he accepts no
bribe or money. Is it not? But even during our Swadeshi movement
though the leaders were egoistic and quarrelsome
they were honest and sincere. Our fight was over
principles e. g. Reform or revolution or as somebody put it, Colonial
self government or
Independence. We
never fought on personal grounds as you now find between Bose and Sen Gupta
or Khare and Shukla. You know what Das said about
criminals? He said: “In my whole legal career
I have not met such worst types of criminals as
in politics.” Evidently he knew about his own
followers.

198

Disciple:
But if Bose sincerely believes that the Congress is going to compromise with
the British
Government on federation,
is not he justified in fighting the federation in the congress? He says
that some suspicious negotiations seem to be going
on behind the scenes.

Sri Aurobindo: But what is there objectionable in negotiations? Every country and
every big party has to do it. The Germans before and during the war were doing
it. Negotiations does not mean
acceptance.
There is no harm in seeing how far the other party will go in granting
concessions,
rights and privileges.

Disciple:
When Nehru visited Nahas Pasha in Egypt, Nahas said that their Wafd party had
become
demoralized after accepting
office and now they are defeated. He wondered how the congress
ministers have remained pure after accepting
office. Nehru explained to him about the
Parliamentary Board which acts as a check on the ministers. The Board
has no administrative
powers and
ministers are not members of the Board.

Sri
Aurobindo:
I was surprised to
hear about the dissolution of the Wafd party and wondered what it might have
been due to. But then they ought to have turned out the king as Kemal did in
Turkey.
The present king is following
the policy of his father. So, instead of quarreling among themselves
they should have–now that they have power–tried
to build up their nation first, by giving people
education and training. Secondly, they should make efforts to increase
the wealth and lastly, they must build up military power. The same thing should
be done in India by the Congress ministry.

Disciple:
What sort of education? Technical?

Sri Aurobindo: Technical, agricultural and other. How will they develop industries
without
properly educated and trained
people? India is such a vast country that if she can

199

produce
her own necessary things, she can consume them herself. External trade is not
necessary at
the beginning. That is
what U. S. A. did. She developed first her internal trade to meet all the
necessities of her own people; and when by that
means she had increased her wealth she began to
develop external trade. The government should have a plan for the
economic survey of the
provinces to
see what could and should be taken up in each province.

Disciple:
That is one good thing Bose had done; he has organized an economic planning
committee.

Sri Aurobindo: But they must not neglect secondary education. You can’t have efficient
people
without education. It creates
common interest and a basis of common understanding. I don’t mean the present
form of education. It has to be radically changed. The Indian boys are more
intelligent
then English boys of the
same age and status but three-fourths of their talent and energy are wasted,
while the English boys use their talent ten times better than the Indian
because of the training and
equipment.

Disciple:
The Bombay Premier has approached the merchants for donation to the Government,
as
there is going to be substantial
loss due to prohibition. The government will have to levy new taxes if they
don’t get money.

Sri Aurobindo: It is better not to destroy the capitalist class as the socialists
want to. They are the
source of
national wealth. They should be encouraged to spend for the nation. Taxing is
all right,
but you must increase
production, and raise new industries, also raise the standard of living;
without that if you increase the taxes there will be a state of depression.
Other nations tax
enormously because
they produce also on a large scale.

Disciple:
The congress ministers are opening agricultural schools training centres for
small
industries.

200

Sri Aurobindo: It is a pity to give up all that work for merely fighting the
Federation. You can
fight it even
after it is established. One has to accept what one gets and on that basis work
out the
rest. If the British Government
finds that the federation is perfectly worked out it may not object to give
more. They expect a crowd of demagogues shouting together in Assembly, not
people capable
of governing. But if
socialism comes that might frighten them.

Disciple:
The present governor of Bombay seems to be sympathetic to his cabinet.

Sri Aurobindo: The English people have constitutional
temperament, except of course, a few
autocrats
like Curzon. They will be violently opposed to their being kicked out, but they
don’t
object to their being gently
shouldered out as in the dominions. The dominions are practically
independent. The British people will be quite
content if they get India’s help in case of an

international
war. But these declarations of anti-imperialist policy and ‘no compromise’
might tend to stiffen their attitude, What is the use of declaring your policy
in advance? Even as regards the

states one must not be too exacting in one’s
demands. They won’t tolerate the idea of reducing them to mere figure-heads from
the very beginning.

Disciple:
Patel is a very capable man, but he is not liked by his colleagues.

Sri Aurobindo: He did not seem to me to be a very likable
person. But if one has sincerity and
capacity
that is enough in politics.

*

201

FEBRUARY, 1939 3rd February 1939.

A letter from a lady disciple was
read to Sri Aurobindo in which she related some of her experiences. She is losing consciousness, finds the mind floating about
as it were, lightning strokes
in the
head and a feeling of some presence. But these experiences give her very great
fear and she
complains of bad health.

Sri Aurobindo: You can tell her that what she calls losing of consciousness is its
movement inwards. It is rather unusual to get these experiences. Usually, one
takes months and months to make the mind quiet and she did it at the first
sitting. The lightning strokes is the action of the
Higher Power, or Yoga Shakti to make the Adhar
fit for Yoga. All these things show that she has a
capacity for the Yoga. But she must get rid of
fear. Otherwise, all the experiences will stop. The
letter shows that her inner mind is ready but her
vital and the physical are not–the

202

vital is full of fear and the body suffers from
bad health. As she herself says, it produces a conflict in the being which is
not desirable. It may be better for her not to take up Yoga seriously, until
she is restored to health. But the most important thing is to get rid of fear.

Disciple:
But how to get rid of it?

Sri Aurobindo: That is the difficulty. Many complain of when
one takes up the Yoga all sorts of
experiences
come in, which are out of the run of ordinary consciousness; and if one fears,
Yoga is
not possible. It has to be
got rid of by the mind, i. e. by the psychological training and will-power.
Any human being, worth the name has a will and
that will has to be exercised or developed. She

can
ask for the protection of the Divine, lay herself in the hands of the Divine
and say there is no
fear. This is
done by the mind. As Vivekananda very insistently said, the Yogi must be
“Abhihi”–without fear.

I
don’t know whether I told you about my experience. After my meeting with Lele I
was meditating
at Calcutta. I felt a
tremendous calm and then felt as if my breath would stop. A silly fear, or
rather
an apprehension, caught hold
of me and I said: If my breath stops how shall I live? At once the
experience stopped and never came back.

There are all sorts of experiences. What will you
do if you feel your head being drilled through, or a nail being thrust inside?
These things, of course, are not physical.

Disciple: But why can’t the experience come quietly?

Sri Aurobindo: The experience comes quietly but you make a row! If your head, or
physical body
is being split then you
could object to it. You ought to know by now that

203

all
these experiences are in the subtle body.

Disciple:
I had also once or twice such fear of presence as the lady speaks of. I sat to
meditate
before going to be and I
felt everything still and then as if there was some presence. That frightened
me.

Sri Aurobindo: Why? You thought it was the devil that brought the stillness? But the
devil, generally does not bring stillness; usually he makes a row. Two things
are necessary in Yoga: to
get rid of
fear and to know the ordinary symbols. (turning to X) You know V once in
meditation
saw that some golden
beings came down and told him: “Now we will cut your body and make it
new.” He cried out: Never, never. He thought
that his physical body was going to be cut. But the
symbolism is quite clear: the old elements in the
nature would be thrown away and new ones
brought in.

Disciple: I heard afterwards that he turned to Jainism. I
don’t know if it is true.
Sri Aurobindo: Was he a
Jain by birth?

Disciple:
Yes.

Sri Aurobindo: Well, that often happens. In one’s vital and physical nature there
remains a stamp
of one’s ancestral
religion and it comes out at some time. The Christians usually turn towards the
Catholicism. A Frenchmen–I forgot his name–tried all sorts of things,
mysticism, Tibetan Occultism etc. When he
was informed by one of our disciples that these things won’t go with Yoga,
he abandoned all connection and turned to Catholicism.

My
grand father started by being a Brahmo and ended by writing a book on Hinduism
and
proclaiming it as best religion
in the world.

204

After a pause: the topic changed. Sri Aurobindo
turned to ‘X’ and said: “So Subhas has met Nehru.”

Disciple: Yes, Nehru may act as a mediator and Tagore may
be the peace-maker between the two
parties.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Subhas speaks of
direct action after six months. But what sort of direct action? It
seems, Gandhi will leave him to form his own
working committee; it will be a great blunder if Gandhi did that. And with
Gandhi left out, what direct action can take place? is it that subhas and
his followers will take off their coats and fight?
or reject seats in the Assembly? Salt Satyagraha is
out of question. There remains breaking laws. But
the Government will bring in the moderates and
rule by them and even run the Federation so long as you don’t send
better men. No-tax campaign?
But that
is a tremendous affair. Gandhi himself says, the country is not ready for it. I
don’t think
Subhas has so much
influence or capacity to make it successful, or an all India movement. Neither
does he himself believe in non-violence. His own
followers don’t seem to know their own mind.

Disciple:
Tagore wants Subhas to compromise with Gandhi, for he knows that Gandhiji is an
international figure.

Sri Aurobindo: Not only that, his word counts; he has not lost the force yet. I think,
if he made a
public statement that
he wanted Pattabhi to be elected, he would have him elected. But there are
still six months to inaugurate the Federation;
what is Subhas going to do in the meantime? Gandhi
knew that Subhas will take up this attitude and
hence he did not want him. Now with his followers
left out of the working committee, the leftists
will probably pass laws, abolishing zamindars and
capitalists and spoil the work done by the
Ministers. They would try to

205

introduce social legislation and that would make
the Governors use their powers, or, if they keep
out of the Assembly, it would be foolish to throw away the powers
given. Before I left politics, I
wrote:
If you get real power, take it and fight for more like De Valera, who took what
was given
and grabbed at more. In the
present international situation when the Government wants to come to
a compromise with the Congress you should accept
it, if what they give is acceptable and fight for
more.

Disciple:
That seems to be Subhas’s idea, but he says: Now is the time to press for
independence.

Sri Aurobindo: That would be all right if the country was prepared for revolution, so
that even if
Bose and a few others
were hanged the movement could have gone on and ultimately the
Government would have yielded as in Ireland.
There, in Ireland, the lives of the people who went
against the national movement were not safe.
Otherwise, one has to proceed with subtler ways. But
what Bose claims now is impossible to get. On the
other hand, it will set the Government against
you and they will try to crush the movement.

Disciple: But if they work this provincial programme and
prepare the country at the same time, and
press the States to give rights to the people then, we might get what we
want without revolution.

Sri Aurobindo: Exactly. It is a clever drive to bring in the States and if they can
carry it through, the Federation will have the Princes and the Congress on one
side and only the minority of the
Muslims
will remain out. Subhas has not done a wise thing.

Disciple:
People are severely criticizing Gandhiji’s statement.

Sri Aurobindo: Only the leftists are doing that. No right

206

wing
man has said anything except S. C. Das (after a long pause of silence):

The British people
have one weakness; they can’t drive things to the extreme. They can’t go on
like
the Germans and some other
nations with methods of suppression for a long time. They have their
prestige to keep before the world and they want
people’s support. They want to govern with a show
of consent or law or constitution. So, they come
in the end with a compromise. France comes to a
compromise, but takes a much longer time. But Germany or Italy can’t
hesitate to go to the extreme
limit.
For instance, in Palestine, the British Government, have almost succeeded in
crushing the
terrorists. If they had
persisted they could have easily put Nahashiby against the Mufti and rule the
Arabs by the Arabs. But they could not go on and
now they have called the Palestine Conference.

If the Mufti is clever he will be able to get as
much as possible, but not the whole of it.
Disciple:
What about the Jews?

Sri Aurobindo: They can leave them to their fate, or they can be
sacrificed for their self-interests
or
they may do something just to save their face. In Ireland, they came to a
compromise, even the
Conservatives
turned round.

In Tunisia, the French have put the Dasturians
into prison, but if they can keep us, France will give
in.

Disciple: Roosevelt seems to have declared for democracy. Disciple: Now Hitler will think twice before he tries to
do anything.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if he is capable of thinking. His inner
voice may ask him to push on.
Mussolini
may think twice unless he too is Hitlerised. In that case Hitler will

207

say: I have given you a chance for Colonies. If
you don’t take it up I will go to Ukraine. Mussolini
may not like that. During Czech-crisis, it was
mere bluff that he succeeded. He knew from private
sources that England and France won’t fight.

Disciple:
Roosevelt has promised France armaments and U. S. A is selling aeroplanes and
other
materials. He may come to their
help if they are attacked.

Sri Aurobindo: But it is doubtful if he can carry the nation with him. The armaments
are increased for the defense. But if they are exported people may think it
will involve them in a war. At any rate, his speech has come as a great blow to
both Italy and Germany. Chamberlain also may think of supporting France now. A
remarkable man, this Roosevelt, he is bold and ready to experiment and
take risks. It is the old Roosevelt blood, only
the first Roosevelt was Fascists. This one is very
refined.

Disciple: J
says that there may not be any war after all.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if the British and the French people go in yielding to the demands
of the
dictators. The British may
say to Germany: we will supply you raw materials, you can come and
settle here.

Disciple:
(to another disciple) You have seen Hidayatullah has become a Minister of
Sindh?

Disciple:
Has he? Allah Bux has won him over, it means. He earned a lot of money from the
Sukkur Barrage Scheme during his
ministry in Bombay, before the congress government.

Sri Aurobindo: How?

Disciple:
He used to sell plots of land to customers through

208

his
agents and he kept some of the best lands for himself. There were similar
charges against some
ministers in
the Central Provinces.

Disciple:
Though people bitterly criticize the High Command, it has done a good job.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. It is the High Command and Gandhi’s dictatorship that has kept the
country
together. That sort of
weakness is very common in America and even in France. But you may not
find such corruption in England. The public life
there is honest and sincere. They may tell lies and may break their promises,
but bribery or appropriation of money hardly exists in their public, or
political administration. As they say, “they are not done.” If a
political leader does that sort of thing
he is finished for life. Thomas is wiped out–nobody hears of him now.
The judges make no
distinction
between rich criminal and a poor one–as they do in America and France and I
suppose India is no better.

*

5th
February 1939

Disciple:
In the Life of Nivedita which Lizelle is writing, she has found many letters,
in one of which she mentions that you gave her charge of editing, Vande
Mataram, after you left Calcutta.

Sri Aurobindo: No. I was the Karma Yogin–not Vande Mataram, I
saw her before I left Calcutta
for
Chandernagore. It was from her that I got the news of my contemplated arrest.
Then I wrote an
article “My
Political Will”–that stopped the arrest.

Disciple: It seems, she traveled to India once under
assumed name to evade arrest in 1910 or 1911.
Sri Aurobindo: She died at Darjeeling; she did not die under assumed name.

209

(The
topic turned to Jainism)

Sri Aurobindo: We were talking about the Tapasya yesterday. Is it not to transcend
nature and
conquer that they do those
violent Tapasyas and not from an idea of illusion?

Disciple:
Perhaps that was the idea.

Sri Aurobindo: Then their aim is the same as ours, only the
method is different.
Disciple: That does not solve Lajput Rai’s idea of illusion
of all action.

Sri Aurobindo: No, the idea may have been in his blood or perhaps atmosphere of the
Indian
place. When I was reading Max
Mullars’ translation of the Vedanta in London I came upon the idea
of ‘Self’ and I decided that Vedanta is something
to be realized in life. Before that I was an atheist
and agnostic. How do you explain that? You can’t
say that it was the atmosphere of the place. It
was in the blood or perhaps carried from past life. Then there was the
experience when I came to
India: as
soon as I set my foot on Apollo Bunder, I felt a vastness and a tremendous calm
coming
over me. I did not know, of
course, that it was an experience. It was a sense of calm and vastness
pervading everywhere and I had not got it in the
steamer. That is the atmosphere of the place.

Another instance is the sense of the Infinite I
had at the Shankeracharya Hill at Kashmir and at
Parvati Hill near Poona, and the reality of the image in a temple at
Karnali near Chandod.

Disciple: I asked X why the Jews are so much persecuted in
Germany. He said that they were a
rich
minority and so they were made the scapegoat. He said, the same thing

210

happened
in France against the aristocracy during the revolution, and in Spain against
the clergy.

Sri Aurobindo: Regarding France, the revolution was not particularly against the
aristocracy; it
was against all
history of the past. And in Spain, it was against the past repression of the
Church.

Disciple: I
asked Mrs. X about conditions in Switzerland. She says, the country is passing
through
a critical time. She is
afraid of a passage through her territory during war. During the last world
war also they passed some anxious days. They were
relieved when Belgium was made the route.
The dictators may decide to take route through Switzerland. If they
attack the Italian and German
speaking
Canton then the French speaking Cantons would be in difficulty.

Sri Aurobindo: It is said that Czechoslovakian frontier was so strongly fortified that
Germany
would have found it difficult
to take it.

Disciple: It is a pity they gave in without fight. But now
Hitler is asking equivalent colonies.
Sri Aurobindo: From whom? Where?

Disciple:
From Belgium, Holland and Portugal.

Sri Aurobindo: Holland has no Colonies in Africa. Portuguese Colonies in Africa are
small and
Hitler would hardly be
satisfied with them. Belgian Congo is big, but England would not dare to do
anything with it, for that will make Belgium
furious and she may side with Germany. England
could not allow that, for if Germany takes possession of Antwerp, it
will be a pistol at the heart of
England.

(Turning
to Disciple):

“Roosevelt
seems to have backed out.” Now he says:

211

America has nothing to do with European problems. Disciple: What do you think about Subhas’s statement?

Sri Aurobindo: “The Hindu” has given a fitting reply; either he meant
something or meant nothing by his declaration.

Disciple:
The Socialists in a recent meeting at Bombay began to shout and continued
shouting.
Shouting is quite
constitutional with them (laughter).

*

7th
February 1939

Disciple:
Bose has called his leftist Conference. I wonder what programme they are going
to
formulate.

Sri
Aurobindo:
That is what they are
not going to say. The only thing they are to do is to give an

ultimatum to the British Government. After that
they will break some laws or ask the Ministers to
resign on the States’ issue, if they have not done
so by that time.

Disciple: The States’ question will be an all-absorbing
matter and the split in the Congress may be
avoided.

Sri Aurobindo: But it is not definite what the princes will do. They are under the
thumb of the
British Government.
Only a man like Holkar and Nabha may side with the Congress and risk losing
his Gadi–throne.

This year there is this threatened split in the
Congress between Subhas and his Socialists and
Gandhi’s followers. Socialism in England is of a watery kind.

Disciple:
In Russia some signs of freedom are noticeable.

Sri Aurobindo: That is because Stalin has killed all unpleasant

212

to
him. He can now wait till some other people come up in future whom he can kill.

Disciple:
Spain is finished.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes.

Disciple:
But Madrid remains and General Mioja is there.

Sri Aurobindo: When Barcelona has fallen Mioja cannot do anything. Besides, what can
he do
without arms and food.

Disciple: Mussolini does not intend to remove the troops
from Spain.
Sri
Aurobindo:
That is what he said
the other day.

Disciple:
It was Gayda who said that.

Sri Aurobindo: Gayda is the mouth piece of Mussolini. When he
does not want to say anything
himself
he speaks through Gayda. But Daladier could make a Spanish legion out of the
Spanish
refugees as a counter-blast
to Mussolini’s Italian legionary in Spain and use it in case the French
troops are not allowed to come from Morocco. But
it is too bold a policy for Daladier.

Sri Aurobindo: That, of course; when somebody comes to take hold of family possession,
the
family will unanimously refuse.

Disciple: The French Chamber voted unanimously against
Italian demand of Colonies.
Disciple: But I wonder how
Flandin supports the Fascists.

Sri Aurobindo: He will be lynched if he talks of parting with
Tunis, Corsica etc. It is a question of
parting with some

213

deserts in Africa. French
people may agree, as they wanted to, during the Abyssianian war, but

Mussolini would say: ‘I am not a Collector of
deserts’
Disciple: But Italy is sure to push her claims again. Disciple: Hitler has advised him to keep quiet now. Sri Aurobindo: Yes, till Franco’s victory is complete. Disciple: Bonnet wanted to come to a compromise.

Sri Aurobindo: Bonnet is not reliable. Daladier has, at least some force. On one
occasion he
refused to listen to
Bonnet and said, he would not tolerate any interference of England in
connection with the Italian question. The French
people don’t know that they have to stand up to
the British and speak to them bluntly. During Czech-crisis when
Chamberlain told them that he
would
help them diplomatically so far as possible, but they should not count on his
military
support, they should have
replied that if England was attacked by the Germans they should not count on
them as allies. Then Chamberlain would have come down.

*

9th
February 1939

Dr.
R. stayed up to 9-30 P. M. As soon as he left the topic of the local politics
was brought in:

Disciple: The Governor has invited the three parties to
see if a compromise can be arrived at. What
he says is that they may have their own political views of whatever
colour but they must not go on
killing
each other.

Sri Aurobindo: He will be one of the greatest diplomats in the world if he can
reconcile their
interests and have a
common programme.

214

(The
topic changed to the Congress election)

Disciple:
Subhas and his Conference do not seem to have settled on any programme. Today’s
paper
says that Gandhiji has wired to
Subhas not to stand for the presidentship. But he does not seem to have paid
any heed to it. It may be that many delegates may vote against him.

Sri Aurobindo: The only thing he speaks of is challenging the
British Government and attacking
the
States–rather a tall order.

Disciple: Yes, Gandhiji also challenged the Government.
The result was the Round Table
Conference.
In the end, Willingdon arrested Gandhiji and refused even to see him.

Sri Aurobindo: Willingdon now will look with queer eyes at the Congress ministries and
think
that all he had done has been
undone.

Disciple:
The working Committee (of the Congress) has decided to give Subhas the
Committee of
his choice. But the
people he has called at Calcutta for a conference don’t seem to be promising.

(The
names were read out to Sri Aurobindo)

Sri
Aurobindo:
Who are these people?
They seem to be an army of no-bodies. Except Aiyangar,

Aney
and one or two others these people were never heard of before.

Disciple:
The other States seem to be supporting Rajkot and asking him not to yield.

Disciple:
If the states organize, backed by the Paramount Power–the British–and lend
their
support then Rajkot may stand
through and the Satyagraha may not succeed. Look at Mysore and
Travancore–Mysore has only appointed

215

Committee
which may go on for three years and so do nothing.

Moreover
it is very difficult to keep the movement non-violent. If it is kept to the
middle class it
may be possible, but
if the masses come in then violence is inevitable. You see the murder of the
Bazulgate in Orissa and breaking out of violence
in Travancore. Human nature is human–if the
movement is confined to a small state like Rajkot it may succeed, but
in the big states it is
impossible
to keep it non-violent.

Disciple:
In Travancore it is Sir C. P. Ramaswamy Aiyar who engineered the outbreak.

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t believe it. In many cases I have seen that Congress people are
not noted for
their truthfulness.
They say what suits them. But if they propose to come out of the Assembly
because of failure in Rajkot or Jaipur, it is not
at all good. These small states must be deprived of
their power and be made like Jamindars. One never
knew that there were so many states.

Disciple:
Jaipur has again released Bajaj (hearty laugh).

Bajaj
was a little hurt while being forcibly removed. Gandhiji called it ‘organized
goondaism.’

Sri Aurobindo: I do not understand why Gandhi calls it
‘Goondaism’. If Bajaj resisted they will
have to use force to remove him and injury is quite possible.

Disciple:
Pratap Singh may be persuaded by Krishnamachari to part with some of his
privileges.

Sri Aurobindo: I saw his photograph today. He has a weak face,
nothing of the grand father in
him.
His father had more brilliance and dash. Pratap Singh has a soul–but not a
strong one.

216

Jaysingh
Rao was dull. Shivaji Rao was intelligent. I taught him French; he was a good
student.
Dhairyashil showed signs of
premature development of lust. All that was due to the servants of the
palace.

Indira
was more interesting and there was something sturdy in her. She had the most of
her
father–Sayaji Rao–in her.

Disciple: There is a criticism of Pujalal’s poetry by a
poet critic. He says, it is not “rooted in the
soil”, too Sanskritised and not written for
the masses. English poetry, he says, is founded on the
Anglo Saxon language.

Sri Aurobindo: Not at
all. The great Shakespeare and poets from Milton to Shelley did not write,
consciously in the Anglo Saxon language–except
William Morris, who used Anglo Saxon words.
They have followed Latin and Greek vocabulary. And the idea of writing
for the mass is a stupid

idea.
Poetry was never written for the mass. It is only a minority that read and
appreciated poetry.
The definition of
modern poetry is what the poet himself and a few of his admirers around him
understand. Shakespeare and Milton are not mass
poets.

Martin Tupper and Mrs. Hymans wrote for the
mass–“He stood on the burning deck, when all but he had fled”–That
sort of thing. Tupper sold more in his life than all the best poets put
together. It is curious, many of the modern poets are communists, but they don’t
write for the mass.

*

18th
February 1939

Disciple: The maxim “from each according to his
capacity and to each according to his need” seem to be basis of Socialism.

217

Sri Aurobindo: Who is to decide the need? In the actual working of Socialism there is
a great
divergence–some tackle only
key industries like Electricity and nationalize them; while others go
into the minutest detail.

Disciple:
Even the Communists in Russia have introduced divergence in wages–to encourage
workers to do more work.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, But that comes to the same thing–only
instead of the Capitalist it is the State
that pays the higher wages.

Communism one can understand; a group owning
property in common and receiving its benefits
according to need and satisfying the need of the group. That is as old
as the world.

But
State ownership is something that creates a class like the Capitalists.
Besides, in countries like
Germany
Nazism makes the national consciousness so strong that they begin to consider
the
individuals like the cells of
the body, bound to think and act alike. No freedom is allowed to them.

Or take the Balkans, for example. The racial and
national ego in them is so rigid that they could not
protect themselves by a federation against
Germany.

*

21st
February 1939

Disciple: In the political problem of India the States
present a great obstacle–particularly to the
political unity of the country.

Sri Aurobindo: It can be achieved as Germany did with her many States.

218

Disciple:
There is a great rush for public career now a days–in fact there is a
competition for it.
But there are the
low tendencies also visible. How to combat this tendency?

Sri Aurobindo: By creating a tradition of respect for character, by throwing out
dishonest men
from public life.
Politicians can lie but not be corrupt.

Parliamentary
form of democracy is not necessarily suited to India. As it is, anybody stands
as a
candidate for election and
either buys off votes or persuades them into giving it, or comes up by
some trick. But he may not be the true
representative. Besides, anybody who comes with majority
should not be made a minister; only capable man
should be given ministership–the policy may be
reserved for the parliament.

Kingship
like that of Aundh is best suited to India, where the king is religious minded
person, a
man of character and
intelligence. He looks to the interest of all his subjects. But for that, the
Kings
must be taught and prepared
with hard training. Now, they learn only how to play cricket and
drink. But in ancient times, a King’s training was
very hard.

*

24th
February 1939

Disciple:
What is the part which mind plays in the cure of a disease?

Sri Aurobindo: The mental factor is much more effective than is generally known or
admitted.
There are cases where the
surgeons have found that the mental factor has saved the patient by
pulling him or her out from a critical condition.
For example, mothers wanting to see their children are saved, being pulled out
of critical conditions.

219

Disciple: Which method of treatment is correct–the Chinese
method of pricking or Homeopathy,
Ayurvedic
or allopathy etc.?

Sri Aurobindo: Nature allows you to follow along certain lines and along each she
shows you
what is possible. For
example, they thought of electricity as wave motion and they found there was
some thing that corresponded to that view. Now
they think of it as made up of particles, you find
that it responds to that also.

Disciple:
That is the realm of matter, but in life–for example, in the curing of a
disease.

Sri Aurobindo: Mental factors determine the physical conditions much more than
doctors would
be prepared to grant.
Cone’s method succeeds and it cannot be considered useless, though it uses no
medicine.

Disciple: Some disciples here believe that there is a
collective Karma for which either the group,
the society or the nation has to bear the consequences like the
individual.

Sri Aurobindo: The collective being is non-evolutionary. It is hard to believe in the
reincarnation
of races.

Disciple:
Somebody seems to have said that the Romans are born as Americans.

Sri Aurobindo: Very queer Romans! You may say in some sense that the English are the
ancient
Carthaginians! Or one may
even hazard that the French are the Greeks reborn. But it won’t carry us
very
far.

You
can’t take for granted that one individual is always born in the same race or
nation in which he is born now. So how can the nation soul or race soul
reincarnate?

Disciple:
Have the nation a soul each?

Sri Aurobindo: You can speak of it as collective or nations being or entity. It is not
in evolution. It
is not subject to
the law of Karma.

Disciple:
Can it be said that law governing it is suprarational?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, each collective being is a projection of the Cosmic Spirit for a
particular
purpose. You can speak of
it as a particular Shakti.

Disciple:
How does the collective being or Shakti work?

Sri Aurobindo: It identifies itself with a particular form–here of a group of
individual. There is a
mutual action:
it acts on the individual and the individual acts on it by manifesting it.

Disciple:
Suppose the collective entity is dissolved from life?

Sri Aurobindo: When the physical form of the collectivity is dissolved here the
collective being
withdraws into the
origin.

Disciple:
Can a collective being, after such a dissolution take another form–a
group–for
manifesting itself?

Sri Aurobindo: We have as yet no proof of it. *

25th
February 1939

Disciple: There is a report about the student of the
Annamalai University picketing and some of
them are fasting.

Sri Aurobindo: Satyagraha is something to be applied in extreme case, but Gandhi has
almost
made a law of it and so there
are so many wrong applications of it.

221

Disciple:
Here in this case the fundamental relations are contradicted e.g. the relation
between
teachers and students. It is
not, for instance, the same as between workers and capitalists.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Even among workers, it makes a great difference if they
are educated. For instance, in Europe, when
they resort to stay in strike, the workers do not injure the machinery and
they even work the important parts to keep it in
order. While in India, where the labour is
uneducated, you can’t have it like that. They destroy the machinery and
then are thrown out of
employment.
In the Savanne Mills they burnt the machinery and then were thrown out of
employment. Similar was the case in Madras Match
Factory.

If
you do not have bill like the one Bombay Trade Disputes Bill, the industries
will go to the pot.
*

222



MARCH, 1939 12th March 1939.

Disciple: Did you notice Jawaharlal’s article in the Hindu?
He can’t forget Subhas not
acknowledging
his report from Europe and also his international politics.

Sri Aurobindo: That again shows Nehru is an idealist. If he has the clarity of mind to
see–as he
has–that socialism can
come in India only after independence, it should be equally clear to him that
India can do something in international politics
only after she is free.

Disciple:
The Congress wants to do something in international field.

Sri Aurobindo: It is a hazy idea. All you have been able to do
for China is to send an ambulance
unit.
It is not like England that can send money to stabilize the currency in China.

223

Disciple: I believe, it is his visit to Europe in the
League against Imperialism that gives him the
impression that he would be able to do something in international
politics.

Sri Aurobindo: It is a wrong impression. It was, for instance,
wrongly supposed that the Governor
of
Pondicherry was recalled because Nehru represented the case to the Secretary of
Colonies.

Disciple:
Perhaps the Secretary might have said, he would move in the matter.

Sri Aurobindo: He might have been only polite; they are always
polite. But that does not mean anything. He might say: “I will look into
the matter” or “thank you for bringing the matter to my
notice.”

Disciple:
Mahatmaji has secured some success.

Sri Aurobindo: Gandhi’s is a big triumph; if some understanding is arrived at between
the princes and the congress it would be very good.

Disciple: I
don’t know if Subhas will deliver his ultimatum.

Sri Aurobindo: If you have a revolutionary programme and a
nation ready to kill or die, then you
may
indulge in ultimatums. India is not ready even as Ireland was. The people are
prepared to get
beaten, or to go to
jail at the most. So you have to see what can be done.

When
India is really free it will think many times before meddling into
international problems
before it is
on its own feet.

Disciple:
You saw M. N. Roy got only 38 votes!

Sri Aurobindo: He might say: Hitler began with even less! But

224

it
does not always happen so. Some people remain where they are: Ostwald Moseley,
for instance,
is where he was ten
years back, and Brailsford writes every week what everybody should do and
nobody seems to do what he says!



Subhas and his group are living even now in the
mentality of 1906 and 1907; they don’t know that
conditions have changed.

Disciple:
They want to put up a fight against the government.

Sri Aurobindo: It is not always by fighting that you get what you want. With all his
idealism
Gandhi knows how far the
people can go and in spite of his inner voice, he knows how far to go
(himself).

*

225

MAY, 1939 6th May, 1939

Arjava
died on the 5th May–at Bangalore. He was treated by Dr. Brunitzer. Post mortem
examination revealed pericardiatis,
six ounces of water from the right side of the heart.

Disciple: Our Dr. X sticks to his Rheumatism theory. The
French doctor started with typhoid, but it
was negatived by blood examination. Dr. Brunitzer, in the beginning said
that it was Septisemia.

Disciple: So, even after the post mortem nobody was wiser.
How is this possible that even after the
post mortem, they don’t accept the diagnosis?

Sri Aurobindo: You can see that Dr. X is not ready to admit anything other than what
he believes.
He takes into

15

226

consideration only those facts that support his
views, and puts all other facts away. So nothing else
can come in.

Disciple:
What is the way out?

Sri Aurobindo: Intuition is the only way. But even there mental intuition may be
right but not
always. Mind deals with
the possibilities and some may come true. Again true intuition has to be
distinguished from the mental imitation of the same,
or from mere suggestion or a strong
impression.

Disciple:
How can one save himself from error?

Sri Aurobindo: There is outer rule; you have to get the psychic tact which throws out
the error.
For example, the Mother
used to feel about the soundness of houses and our engineer used to find out
afterwards that her feeling was true, though she does not know architecture or
engineering.
Another necessity is
that one must be sincere about finding the truth by intuition. That is to say,

one must not jump at the first idea and run away
with it. The mind must be absolutely impartial and
also one must be patient and one must wait. One
must also test his intuitions.



16th
May 1939

A
letter from a disciple received on the 29th April written to co-disciple here
spoke of his
experience at
Tiruannamalai.

He mentioned in his letter that the resistance in
his physical being was broken by the spiritual
experience he had there.

In
the evening a disciple asked Sri Aurobindo:
“What

227

do
you think of his saying that the resistance in the physical is gone?”

Sri Aurobindo: I have heard people saying that the body of Maharshi is shaking. How
could have
he done what he did not
do, or did not care to do, for himself, for someone else?

Disciple:
But he describes his experience in detail: for instance, the triangle and the
Sun and the
light pouring into him
etc.

Sri Aurobindo: He had always the habit of making mental
constructions and living in them. So,
his
valuation of experience is not right.

Disciple:
Why does he commit mistake in the valuation of his experience?

Sri Aurobindo: He had a very powerful ego, which he never tried
to get rid of when he was here.
He
always wanted to start an Ashram; whenever you have this kind of ego it always
interferes with
the understanding and
does not allow correct valuation. At every experience he gets his ego swells up
and uses the experience to strengthen itself.

Disciple:
How to get rid of the ego?

Sri Aurobindo: He speaks of the peace he got.

Sri Aurobindo: Do you think he got it there for the first time? He got hundreds of
experiences
here.

*

228

Between
20th and 27th May 1939

The subject was Trikal Drishti–knowledge of the
Time or the True Time Vision. Why he did not
know about the accident was also one of the questions.

Sri Aurobindo: I have not said that I am in full possession of the supramental. People
have wrong
ideas about these things.

Christ,
in spite of his miracles, could not cure anyone in one district. He said:
“I can’t because they
have no
faith.”

People forgot that there are conditions to be
fulfilled. It is a question of the divine consciousness working in and through
inferior principles, like mind and vital and body and there are conditions to



be
fulfilled for the working.

Disciple:
They say that God being Omnipotence he should be able to do anything however
impossible.

Sri Aurobindo: No. Omnipotent does not mean to make God act as
our mind wants or expects.
Omnipotence
does not work in one way; it works in many ways.

*

229

NOVEMBER, 1939

19th and 20th November 1939

Disciple:
Is physical relations responsible for the vitiation of pure and idealistic
love?

Sri Aurobindo: It is not only the physical but also the vital
that is equally responsible. Desire,
impulse
of possession are more responsible for it than the physical relation.

Disciple: There are people who believe that the physical
relation is an essential part of the highest
relation of love.

Sri Aurobindo: Blake for instance, says that spiritual love
should be sanctified by the physical act.
Disciple:
Salincourt criticizes Blake.

Sri Aurobindo: Salincourt writing about Blake is like a sheep
trying to understand a lion! Blake
has
got power, you

230

can say ferocious power, madness and theories too
coherent to be sane.
Disciple: Has the physical relation a place in love?

Sri Aurobindo: A time comes in the life of a woman when to surrender herself she feels
it as
fulfillment, even physically.

Disciple:
Has such a physical relation a place in psychic love?

Sri Aurobindo: It depends. It can be the psychic love extended
to the body. In the psychic relation
physical
relation is possible; when it takes place it is for procreation. It is a part
of the attitude of a
female to the
male–the attitude of submission. Surrender is more psychic than that.

Disciple:
In the physical relation is there no danger of the higher elements getting
lost?

Sri Aurobindo: It depends on the strength of the psychic being.
It may be overclouded by the vital
and
the physical element. Of course, when it is merely physical then there is no
adoration and love in it. Psychic relation is not generally found.

Disciple:
An individual who has not found his companion, and has hankering or need for
one
meets a woman whom he loves; now
if he keeps his love free from physical and vital elements, i. e.



keeps it pure and psychic–does it mean that such
a relation is necessary for him–or that is his
need?

Sri Aurobindo: No, it can’t be said. It depends on the
particular case to say whether it is necessary.
The Vaishnavas wanted to sublimate even the lower

231

elements
of love by bringing them to the Divine. But we know the result; most of them
failed. Not
that it cannot be done,
it can–but it is not easy.

Disciple:
You have written in the Synthesis (of Yoga) that ordinary human love can act as
a
preparation and may be a form of
aspiration.

Sri Aurobindo: It was not written for Yogis. It acts like that in ordinary man, if
there is a psychic
element in it i.
e. if it is true love and not vital desire or attachment or impulse for
possession. Then
it acts as an
awakener and uplifter. Blake accepts the physical also as something Divine. The
elements of love are: adoration and
desire for the union.

Disciple: Is such a love an unconscious seeking for the
Divine? It may not bring divine fulfillment
but that of love itself.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is.

Disciple:
Is it possible to evoke the Divine in oneself to love the other?

Sri Aurobindo: If one has found the Divine in oneself then he
adores Him and surrenders oneself to him. Such a man can love others–but that
is a part of action of universal love.

The spark in human love, even if it is degraded
afterwards, tends to awaken the consciousness and
evolve the being.

*

232

21st November 1939

Disciple:
If love is an unconscious seeking for the Divine, why some people, who have
turned to
the Divine will seek the
human love, especially here?

Sri Aurobindo: Are they conscious of the Divine? If one is conscious of the Divine,
one of the two
things would happen:
either one would turn exclusively to the Divine or being conscious of the
Divine one may keep the human love as an
appendage.

Disciple:
Supposing a man is unconscious and seeks human love can it not be a seeking for
Divine?

Sri Aurobindo: These things are hardly pure–they are always
mixed up. It may be only a cover for
something
else. There are people who, as I said, when turn to the Divine turn away from
everything
else. But it depends.

For instance, when
you turn to the Divine you do not give up your friendship for somebody. Only,

if you turn to the Divine the friendship ceases
in the old sense, but it taken up so that it does not
become an obstacle to the progress of each other.

There may be even individual love apart from
universal love which one gets when one is conscious
of the Divine.

*

233

DECEMBER, 1939

14th December 1939

Disciple:
Did you meet Swami Dayanand of Bengal?

Sri Aurobindo: No. I met one of his disciples, a scientist, in
the Calcutta National College. When I
wrote–in
those days–about the Avatar, he said the Avatar is already there. Afterwards
he himself
recanted his avatarhood
when the shooting affair took place.

He has an idea of establishing world peace by
bringing all nations together. He can say that he
established the League of Nations and somebody
else has disestablished it.

Disciple: He used to keep nothing for the morrow in his
organization–he depended entirely on
Divine
Grace.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, and he also started, I believe, Sannyasi marriage–I can’t say, if
it was real
marriage or spiritual.
But he had something real in him.

234

Disciple:
Another Avatar is coming out from Poona. He is going to declare himself in
1941.

Sri Aurobindo: No objection. But there is great danger of
imagination mixing up in such things.
Disciple:
Can such people be suspects?

Sri Aurobindo: No, perhaps romantic. There can also be a mixture of mysticism combined
with
romance. When one deals with
mysticism one has to be very careful, because there are many truths
and also many imaginations.

Disciple:
The Rosicrusians also believe in the reality of mystic experience of
Christianity.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, X belonged to that group in England. But it
created a lot of difficulty in his
Sadhana
because they posit two things in man, good and evil persons. The evil person
has to rise

up
in order to be got rid of by the good. There are already sufficient evil things
in the world without
evoking the evil
person. The Europeans have very imperfect understanding of these things. Even
the Christian mystics have hardly any clear idea
about them.

Disciple:
That is so because, perhaps, they do not want to get rid of their
individuality.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes. They mix up the
self and the ego even when they have identification with the
Higher Consciousness; they think that it is the
ego which has become that.

Even
Blake who had some idea of identity confuses ego with self.

Disciple: A
says, Gita’s idea of freedom demands freedom from nature–Prakriti. Therefore,
so long
as man follows Buddhi he is
not free.

235

Sri Aurobindo: Does the Gita say that?

Disciple:
In the verse where it is said Satwa binds by happiness and knowledge.

Sri Aurobindo: That is quite another thing. The question is
whether Buddhi can help you to detach
yourself
or not and whether, it can lead you to the perception of something higher than
itself.

Disciple: I
think the text of the Gita will support that view.

Sri Aurobindo: I also think so. Otherwise what is the meaning of Gita laying so much
stress on
Buddhi? Buddhi helps you to
detach yourself and prepares you for the higher perception of the
Purusha. And even Shankar, I believe does not say
that reason is quite useless. He also admits that
reason prepares the human spirit for what is
beyond. Even for going beyond Sattwa, it is a stepping
stone.

Disciple:
It means, Buddhi is an instrument of Nature.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is an instrument of Nature that helps you to rise to the
higher Nature. Gita,
as I said,
maintains that Buddhi can perceive that which is beyond it.

Disciple: A does not want to admit O’s contention that
Kant’s idea of following reasons and Gita’s
Buddhi yoga are the same.

Sri Aurobindo: Well, in a controversy one has to see the truth in the other man’s
point of view.

Disciple: A told me that Kant changed his mind later in
life and admitted the necessity of faith with
which he deals in his “Critique of practical reason.”

Sri Aurobindo: I have not read European philosophy carefully.

236

Disciple:
Moreover, it does not interest us so much as there is no practical side to
their philosophy.

Sri Aurobindo: That was X’s great complaint that people here want always something
practical
from philosophy. They don’t
want to think for the sake of thinking.

Disciple:
Kant seems to say that who follows his reason is free, who follows the senses
is bound.
This is, in part, an
Indian idea.

Sri Aurobindo: They have no idea of freedom–mukti–in the
Indian sense; their idea is to arrive at
the Truth.

Disciple:
Yes, also some idea of applying the truth to life.

Disciple:
Yes, some sort of idealism. It is not spiritualism. In his “critique of
practical reason”,
Kant
maintains that “pure reason is an abstract faculty hardly to be found
unmixed in man and so

practical
reason is necessary.

Sri Aurobindo: What is then the ‘pure reason’ for?

Disciple:
It is only an unattainable ideal. A says that the contention of Kant’s opponent
is that
every body follows reason.
So, everybody should be considered free. Everyone justifies his
action–even the thief supports his stealing by
some reasoning.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is very practical reasoning (laughter). Disciple: And he is free, because he acts freely.

Sri Aurobindo: How?

Disciple:
Because he decides freely, to steal.

Sri Aurobindo: It is a reason that is bound. There is another
reason which is detached, and,
according
to Gita, the

237

man will not be free when he reasons about
stealing but if he can steal with disinterestedness then
he is free.

Disciple:
To the western mind killing with detachment is difficult to grasp.

Sri Aurobindo: All these European philosophers after the Greeks
admit that Reason is the faculty
by
which you arrive at the Truth. The question about the sense perceptions and
their reliability is
easily met. We
perceive certain things by our senses and the sensations, for all men are the
same
because our senses have a
common organizations. Even then different persons perceive the same
thing differently.

If
Reason could work in the abstract and be an ideal faculty it might arrive at
the perception of
Truth beyond
itself. As it is, Reason practically deals with different ideas and there
reason differs
in different
individuals.

What
I say is that if reason was sufficient for arriving at the Truth then all
reason would arrive at
the same
condition. And we find out that different persons using reason arrive at
contrary
conclusions even from the
same premises.

Reason
can perceive that there is something beyond itself that is the Truth. But it
tries to assert the
Truth–it perceives
as the whole truth. But reason is not right when it says so. The Truth is
infinite
and has infinite sides.
Each conclusion of reason has some truth in it and we have to find something
that
is fundamental behind the particular formulation of the reason, and that is a
matter of experience. That which is behind
is the Absolute and the Absolute cannot be known by reason.

What can be known by the mind is Sat, Chit,
Ananda. In other words, when the Absolute presents
itself to the mind it formulates itself as
Sachchidananda.

238

One
can know the Absolute through the only.

Disciple: The Upanishads say that the expression of that is
not possible.

Sri Aurobindo: All Vedanta asserts that mind and speech cannot express it, because as
soon as
you put it in mental terms
you limit it. Up to the Overmind some how you can manage to express
yourself but when come to Supermind it is
impossible. And if you go still higher and approach the
Absolute it is still more impossible.

Disciple:
Is reason a personal faculty or impersonal?

Sri Aurobindo: If you go beyond you find wherever there is a
personal, there is the impersonal and vice versa.

Disciple:
How to find that kind of reconciliation?

Sri Aurobindo: Throw reason aside, then you find the reconciliation. You have to go on
with
experience till you find the
reconciling experience in which all find their truth. Each is an approach
to the Absolute. In a certain sense one could even
say that reason would not be right if it did not differ. For instance, if the
descriptions of all the countries were the same it would not perhaps do. And
yet the earth is one and so is mankind and human nature. All is One.

Disciple: About the knowledge of identity, is the identity
of Sushupti the same as knowledge by
identity?

Sri Aurobindo: No, it is not the same as knowledge by identity.
They all speak of knowledge of
the
self by identity. But there can be the knowledge of other thing also by
identity.

Disciple:
What is meant by “direct knowledge?”

Sri Aurobindo: Direct knowledge is the knowledge of the

239

truth
of things directly; it is not necessarily knowledge of the Self or Spirit.

Disciple:
It seems, the ancient had it and it is said that Raja yogis get it by what they
call Sanyama.

Sri Aurobindo: I suppose they meant by Sanyama putting the
pressure of consciousness upon the
thing
to be known.

But if one has the true consciousness it does not
require concentrating. One has only to put it.
*

15th December 1939

Disciple
X was laughing and Y was present. Sri Aurobindo turned his head inquiringly as
to mean:
What is the cause of the
laughter.

Disciple: My presence acts as a catalytic agent, so I
myself do not know the cause nor what is the
joke.

Sri Aurobindo: That is how the subliminal self acts, without
your knowledge, while your surface
consciousness
is ignorant about it.

Disciple: But to return to N’s question. If one takes the
standpoint of reason and wants to decide

about the validity of spiritual experience he will
find the experiences also differ. So how can
experience be a criterion.

Sri Aurobindo: Experience is not a criterion; it is a means of arriving at the Truth.
Experience is
one thing and the
expression is another. You are again putting reason as a judge of experience
which is about expression. When men differ in
laying stress or in their mental preference for this or
that side of the expression, it does not mean that
the experience itself is not valid. It is only

240

When
you try to put it in mental language that the differences arise. That is why
the Vedantis say that mind and speech can’t express the Truth. As soon as you
put it in mental terms you limit it. If
you find that experiences differ, then you have to go on having
experiences till you come to the
reconciling
experiences in which all find their place.

The
Truth, as I said is infinite and there are infinite sides or points of view of
it and each
conclusion of reason
expresses something of that infinite. All of them express some particular
view, but they are all wrong when they say that
their view is the whole and the entire Truth.

When
you want to describe a spiritual experience you are obliged to use mental terms
and you can
somehow manage it, so
long as you deal with levels up to the Overmind. But when you enter the
Supermind then it is impossible. And if you
proceed still higher towards the Absolute, well, it is
still more impossible.

Disciple:
It is so perhaps because reason is obliged to consider the infinite.

Sri Aurobindo: It takes up one standpoint and says the others are wrong. If it takes
up the Impersonal, it says the personal cannot be true and vice versa. Reason
would not be right if it did
not
differ. It would be as if the descriptions of all the countries were the
same–then they won’t be
true.

Disciple: How?

Sri Aurobindo: If you describe Switzerland and U. S. A. in the
same way, how can it be true?
(after
sometime) And yet the earth is One and mankind is One.

There
is the Personal and also the Impersonal. When

241

you transcend both of you arrive at the Absolute. Disciple: So they are aspects of the Absolute.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but it does not mean that they are less true or that Absolute
excludes them.
These preferences are
mental. It is when you throw aside reason that you arrive at the Absolute.

Disciple:
There is a verse in the Upanishad for knowledge by identity–leaving aside the
mind.
“One must become one with
that like an arrow piercing the mark.”

Sri
Aurobindo:
That won’t fit
exactly, because knowledge by identity is much more than that.
Generally they mean by “knowledge by
identity” the knowledge of self; while that is one part of the knowledge
by identity.

Disciple:
In Raja yoga, they speak of direct knowledge by Sanyama. I do not know if they
mean by
Sanyama concentration of
consciousness on the object. That is by putting the pressure of
consciousness on the thing to be known. It need
not necessarily require concentrating on it when
the true consciousness is there and it comes in contact with the object;
it knows it directly.

Disciple:
Raja Yoga speaks of Siddhis also e. g. control over matter or knowledge of
Suryaloka and Chandraloka, conquest of death etc.

Sri Aurobindo: Knowledge of Suryaloka and Chandraloka one may have, but conquest of
death is
another matter. The Raja
Yoga does not acquire Siddhis by wanting them; they speak of Siddhis
coming to them. And it is true for those who enter
a certain state of consciousness.

16

242

Disciple: The Upanishad speaks of the Yogi’s conquering
diseases and death.
*

30th December 1939

Disciple: The Hindu Mahasabha this year has got a large
number of delegates from the two
provinces
with Muslim majority.

Sri Aurobindo: The two provinces with a Muslim majority?

Disciple:
Do you think that the Hindu Mahasabha if it is organized would weaken the Congress?

Sri Aurobindo: The Congress may allow the Mahasabha to settle the question with the
Muslims
by organizing the Hindus
instead of nationalist Hindus quarreling among themselves. If the
Congress can do something effective then it would
be all right.

Disciple:
There are some people who object to “Vande Mataram” as a national
song. And some
Congress men support
the removal of some parts of the song.

Sri Aurobindo: In that case the Hindus should give up their culture.

Disciple:
The argument is that the song speaks of Hindu gods, like Durga and that is
offensive to
the Muslims.

Sri Aurobindo: But it is not a religious song. It is a national song and the Durga
spoken of is India
as the Mother.
Why should not the Muslims accept it? It is an image used in poetry. In the
Indian
conception of nationality the
Hindu view would naturally be there. If it cannot find a place there
the Hindus may as well be asked to give up their
culture. The Hindus don’t object to
“Allah-ho-Akbar”.

243

Disciple:
If they call India “Allah-ho-Akbar” then Hindus would not object to
it.

Sri Aurobindo: It is not in the Hindu nature to object to such things. Why should not
the Hindu
worship his God? Otherwise,
the Hindu must either accept Mohammedanism or the European

culture or become atheists.

Disciple:
And why should not the Muslims accept some Hindu idea, if for nothing else then
for
coming to a settlement?

Disciple:
The Congress says the question cannot be solved as long as the third party is
there.

Sri Aurobindo: I told C. R. Das (in 1923) that this
Hindu-Muslim question must be solved before
the Britishers go, otherwise there
was a danger of civil war. He also agreed and wanted to solve it.

Disciple: The Congress thinks if the Britishers go, the
Muslims may be forced to come to a
settlement.

Sri Aurobindo: The Congress says: whatever agreements we come
to must be accepted by the
Britishers.

Disciple:
If the parties come together the Viceroy cannot oppose it.

Sri Aurobindo: Of course not. He would say: come to a settlement and we will accept
it. It is only
two ways of looking at
the same things. But it is better to have a settlement before, because
otherwise any third party might take advantage and
come in. It is no use having again somebody else to dominate India.

Disciple:
Any neighboring countries can come and even distant countries like Japan cannot
be
ruled out; even Russia. But how is
this problem to be solved?

244

Sri Aurobindo: The best solution would be if Congress got the majority of the
nationalist Muslims
on their side,
and then take the Sindh Premier who wants to be with them. Thus they can retain
Sindh for the Congress–and then in the Punjab they could come to some understanding
with
Sikandar Hayat Khan. If they
had not driven out Khalikuzaman in U. P. there would have been no
Muslim League in the U. P. If the Congress had
joined with the Krishak Party in Bengal then the
Congress would not be so badly off.

Instead of doing what was necessary the Congress
is trying to flirt with Jinnah and Jinnah simply
thinks that he has to obstinately stick to his terms to get them. The
more they try the more Jinnah
becomes
intransigent.

Disciple:
There was an idea that the Congress should have mass contact with the Muslims
and it is
unfortunate that the
Congress did not take it up.

Jinnah
is appealing to the Hindu Minorities to join him. So why should not the
Congress ask
Muslims to be with it?
If the Congress does not do anything then I think the Hindu Mahasabha will
do some good after all. Don’t you think so?

Sri Aurobindo: That is not the best thing. But if the Hindus organized themselves
then it would make some rational Muslims think again and it would give men like
Sir Akbar, who want to come to a compromise, a chance to intervene.

Disciple: The Khilafat agitation was a great mistake; it
only added to the fanaticism of the Muslims
without giving them patriotism or nationalism.



245

JANUARY, 1940 4th January 1940

Disciple:
I had a talk with G about Rigveda and on the Aryan-Dravidian question. He gave
me one
or two arguments to support
his contention. According to him the fact of different children in the
same family having different colours is a positive
argument that race of the parents is a mixed one.
Secondly, in the Rigveda itself there is mention
of dark-skinned people and “Anasa.”

I said “Anasa” figures only in one Rik
out of more than ten thousand Riks and it may not mean
“nose-less” or “flat-nosed.”

Sri Aurobindo: “Anasa” is not flat-nosed, it means nose-less.

Disciple: I consulted the Rigveda and found that it refers
only to the Dasyus and not to
non-Aryans.

Sri Aurobindo: The Orientalists also wanted to prove the

246

existence of Linga worship in the Rigveda by
citing a Rik in which the word “Shishnadevah”
occurs.

Disciple:
K. M. Munshi in tracing the origin of Bhakti long ago wrote that devotion is
nothing else
but sublimation of the
sex-impulse, and he tried to trace the origin in the Rigveda. I contradicted
his view even then and showed that
“Shishna-deva” only means sensualists.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so. And what have they to say about the Dravidian tribe in
Baluchistan? Is it
black and
flat-nosed? How on earth do they find out these things from the
Rigveda–nomadic
existence,
gambling, and crossings of the rivers, which to me is mystical. I also find
that the fight
between Tristsu and
Sudansah in the eighth Mandala is not merely a battle, it is something
symbolic.

Disciple:
That is one of their strongest points in the Indologist armoury. If one can get
the clue to the symbol of the ten Kings that would be the end of their theory.

Disciple: Did you hear J’s interpretation of your poem
Trance? He says that the “star” in the poem
stands for the individual, and the
“moon” in the poem is the Universal.

Sri Aurobindo: If it is there I am not aware of it. His interpretation is not very
much unlike that of
a Western
scholar; he seems to read his own mind into the text but that is not poetry–it
is
metaphysics. I have explained the
terms myself: “star” is the star of creation, and “moon” is
the
sudden upheaval of the inner
life, and “ocean-self” is true-being. There is no philosophy in it.

*

247

5th
January 1940



Disciple: I
am trying to get intuition but I fail.

Sri Aurobindo: Perhaps you were disappointed with Brinjal so it is not coming.

Disciple:
But N. began to have guidance as soon as he started his Yoga. He has a mind
which
seems to be opened to the
intuitive faculty.

Disciple:
Guidance in what way?

Disciple:
Guidance when ever he is in difficulty.

Sri Aurobindo: A man of successful action gets a sort of insight which is half –
intuition; while a
man of intellect
is generally handicapped and thinks of various possibilities saying: this will
happen, that will happen.

Disciple:
Has a man of successful action no intellect?

Sri Aurobindo: He has but for action he feels what will happen and seizes upon it. He
acts upon
the suggestion and in most
cases it turns out to be right. Not that he does not go wrong at all. The
nature of his mind is such that he is open to this
intuitive faculty of action. The English people are so successful because they
have a knack of getting vital intuition which leads to success. Even if
they commit mistakes and jumble things together,
in the end their intuition comes to their help and
pulls them out of the difficulty. The French on
the other hand are more logical. They think and
reason.

Disciple:
The English are thinking of Finland more actively because they are afraid of
German-Russian naval combination in the Baltic.

Sri Aurobindo: But how are they going to help? They 248

require
ammunition and military equipment for themselves. I don’t know how they have
enough to
spare. Referring to N.

Are
you trying to get intuition in the medical faculty? Instead of limiting to one
special field of
activity why not
try in a general way?

Disciple:
In what way?

Sri Aurobindo: For everything. For example, what X. is going to do next or if you are
a reader of
novel you try to get
what will follow. Of course, it is for an expert novel reader to say that.
After
all, many people get intuition
without knowing it.

*

8th
January 1940

Disciple: Have you read C. V. Raman’s address at the
Science Congress? Sri Aurobindo: Yes,
I have.

Disciple: It seems they have discovered two new elements.

Sri Aurobindo: Not discovered, but created by changing the position of the particles
in the atom.
What are they going to
do with them?

Disciple: The cost of producing them will be prohibitive.
Though the method of breaking up by
Cyclotron
is cheap. Raman has supported Einstein’s theory about unity of matter and
energy.

Sri Aurobindo: Has anybody doubted it? Disciple: No.

Sri Aurobindo: But what is energy?

249

Disciple:
Modern scientists have stopped asking that question. They only concern
themselves with
the ‘how’ and not the
‘why’ or the ‘what’. But their own discoveries will make the question more
pointed.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so. Because the question is why a
different combination of atomic particles
should make a different element.

Disciple:
Once energy was said to be tubes of force and there was theory of vortices in
vogue.

Sri Aurobindo: That means force in movement. You know energy
when it is in activity and then
the question
arises what is force?

Disciple:
They don’t answer this question.

Sri Aurobindo: Unless you accept a Being behind who applies the force and also becomes
matter
there is not other
explanation. When they are given this reply they say it is all nonsense. They
explain it by saying it is nature. They don’t
know what is nature. It is merely giving a name. Nature
stands for a magic formula, a Maya and they
explain everything by that formula.

Disciple: The scientists swore by the rigorous law of
causation but now they find it difficult to
apply it in their investigations.

Sri Aurobindo: What is causation? It only means that certain conditions follow
certain other
conditions.

Disciple:
How can the presence of somebody behind force be proved?

Sri Aurobindo: There is no other explanation. I have said that in the Life Divine.

250

Disciple:
He didn’t say about somebody but a Being.

Sri Aurobindo: I have said in the Life Divine that you can not explain the appearance
of
consciousness out of Matter unless
you accept a Being behind. The Being may be either
Unmanifest and involved in Matter or it may be
Manifest.

Disciple:
It is the Brahman playing on Brahman or with it.

Sri
Aurobindo:
They will accept the
Brahman playing within the Brahman.

Disciple: They want to catch Brahman with their scientific
instruments.

Another Disciple:
They have despaired of even that! They have come to the materialistic
conception of the Universe. They speak of
tensorial law.

*

10th January 1940

Disciple: In a publication of the Gita Press the writer is
trying to prove the efficacy of repeating
Divine name and of the Kirtan. He cites Tulsidas in support of his
contention.

Sri Aurobindo: If it was so easy it would have been delightful.

Disciple: There is a story of Ajamil in the Puranas to
support the efficacy of repeating the Name.

Sri Aurobindo: The value of Name and Kirtan depends upon
awakening of the Psychic Being and
its
influence over other parts of nature.

Disciple: Has mechanical repetition no effect?

251

Sri Aurobindo: If it touches the psychic being it has.

Disciple: In the Kirtan people easily go into ecstatic
state or Bhavasamathi.

Sri Aurobindo: Very often it ends in awakening the vital
instead of the psychic being.
Disciple: ‘X’ is now
retired. Do you think now he is doing your Yoga?

Sri Aurobindo: He has his own way of doing the yoga and the
seclusion, I believe, is temporary.
Disciple:
They cite your own example in favour of retirement.

Sri Aurobindo: It is wrong to say that I do not accept life
because I do not actively participate in
it. It is true I am not for acceptance of life as it is. I accept life,
i. e. nature, for transformation.

Disciple: Some of our disciples are not taking part in
ordinary life but can we say that they are
retired? Or can we say that they are not doing your yoga?

Disciple: X. here likes ordering people about, he seems
full of anger, egoism, etc.

Sri Aurobindo: That changes last because the outer being is the
last to change; it does not mean
that
there has been no progress within.

Disciple: In Raman Maharshi’s Ashram one feels at once the
peace.

Sri Aurobindo: Is there nobody in the Ashram here who feels
quiet and peaceful?
Disciple: In the world also you find people who are not

252

jealous
and are peaceful. The difficulty is how to find them without attaining inner
perfection

oneself.

Sri Aurobindo: X felt peace and immediately went in for the yoga. It is nothing
compared to what is yet to be done. In many people I see the light which I
don’t see in worldly people.

“New Statesman” condemns Huxley’s book
‘After many summer’ as a witty parody thrown into
philosophy.

Sri Aurobindo: Then it is no worse than Anthony West. He does
not seem to admit wit even. They say Forster is also philosophical.

Disciple: They do not seem to like intellectual novels
like those of Tagore.
Sri
Aurobindo:
If not intellectual,
will they write stupid novels?

Disciple Tagore in his novels analyses various
psychological movements which common people
can’t understand. Sharatchandra can be said to be a non-intellectual
writer.

Disciple:
Yes, except in his ‘Shesher Prashna’.

Disciple: So far as I have read he does not seem to be
very intellectual. Sri Aurobindo: He
is not much of a thinker.

Disciple:
He has in some of his writings pleaded the cause of Western civilization or
culture by
taking the opposite line
of arguments, but to me they have seemed always to be weak. For example,
his heroine does not find anything grand in the
conception behind the Taj Mahal.

Sri Aurobindo: What is there European about it? The one thing they like is the Taj.

253

Disciple: I
don’t mean the architectural beauty, but he ridicules the ideal of immortal
love.

Sri Aurobindo: From that point of view Europeans like the idea of immortal love. In
fact love has
a great place in their
life.

Disciple:
Love in the sense of emotion directed to one person alone and continuing even
if the
person is dead. Sharat’s
heroines cannot bear this. He seems to advocate re-marriage or no marriage as
far as I understand.

Sri Aurobindo: Why is it European? In Europe no one advocates such an idea except a
few
intellectuals. If you want to
abolish the institution of marriage they will raise a hue and cry.

*

254

FEBRUARY 1940 23 February 1940

Disciple: The world is Swayambhu–self-existent–according
to Jainism. God can’t have created
world
because he lacks motive.

Sri Aurobindo: Do you create because you are unhappy? Nirod
writes poetry because he is
miserable?

Disciple:
No, to get more joy.

Sri Aurobindo: He is then full of joy and wants more.

Disciple:
If God has not created the world, you can’t get his help in liberation.

Disciple: In Jainism each one gets liberation by his own
effort. Even Tirthankars don’t help. Sri
Aurobindo:
Of what use are they?

Disciple:
He is like an example. It is Shasan Devatas who are worshippers of Tirthankars
that help.

255

Sri Aurobindo: Then you can worship the Devas. If Devas worship Tirthankars they
should not
help either because their
ideal is the attainment of Tirthankars. Why should they help? It is also
contradiction of the law of Karma. If Karma
brings its own reward inevitably then help of God is
unnecessary. If God helps and intervenes
effectively and changes the result of action, then the law of Karma is not
true.

Disciple:
Jainism believes in Purushartha.

Sri Aurobindo: If you believe in Purushartha you can’t expect
Grace of God. How can you pray to
help you?

Disciple: I believe in Grace but in Jainism they don’t. Disciple: Then why do you do this?

Disciple
For myself I believe. They believe each one is alone and they say: “I have
come alone and
will go alone.”
This feeling will give Vairagya.

Sri Aurobindo: If he is alone, how does the Tirthankars and Acharyas, so many,
infinite number of, Siddhas crowded in Siddhasila come in? Like all religions
it is fantastically illogical. Buddha
also
said the same thing, but the religion says: “Buddham Saranam
Gachchhami.” So also in
Jainism.

Disciple:
In Jainism self-mortification persists. In Buddhism there is not. Buddha gave
it up after a
trial. Buddha and
Mahavir were contemporaries but they don’t seems to have met. Mahavir was
born in Vaisali.

Sri Aurobindo: Who? M? (laughter).

Disciple:
In Jainism each soul is bound by ignorance and there are three ties of that
ignorance and
three ways of
liberation. This has been symbolized in the Swastika.

256

Sri Aurobindo: That is why Hitler took Swastika from there.
(laughter)
Disciple: Because he wants to dominate over all the world.



Disciple: Jainism believes in multiplicity of Purushas and
in one Prakriti.
Disciple: It is like the Sankhya system.

Sri Aurobindo: They took it from Sankhya. Their whole stand is
on the Sankhya. (Disciple M.)
was
repeating Navakar like Gayatri.

Disciple:
It sounds like Pali.

Disciple: Yes; it is written in Magadhi. It is in the
Prakrit language.
Sri
Aurobindo:
What kind of Prakrit?
There are many Prakrits. Disciple: The
language that was current in Behar.

Disciple:
Mahavir was a Behari.

Date
not available but sometime February.

Disciple:
Bijoy Goswami passed the last years of his life in Puri and he came to the
conclusion that
so long as poverty
was there in India spiritual and religious teaching had no chance. One of his
disciples writes in the last issue of the ‘Kalyan’
that in his last years he believed in Dana
Yagna–charity. So much so that he ran into big debts and when his
health was failing the disciple
had
to arrange for the money to pay up the loan, because Bejoy Goswami said that he
could not leave Puri before paying the debt and he asked his disciples not to
be calculating and practical but
do
the work, as a Divine work, without thinking of to-morrow.

257

Sri Aurobindo: It is one thing to think of tomorrow and quite another to try to remove
poverty by
feeding the poor. People
don’t understand that philanthropy cannot remove poverty, it can at the most
relieve it. If you want to remedy poverty you must find the causes of poverty
and remove
them. And it is not a
correct idea that when people have plenty they will think of God, since the
greater number of spiritual people have been
those who have renounced everything and lived on
very little. As soon as people have money they forget those who have no
money.

Disciple:
His idea was that people cannot believe that God is all-merciful, kind and
loving, unless at least their physical needs are satisfied.

Sri Aurobindo: If the idea is that God is all compassionate and
must look after everybody’s food
and
cloth then of course his principle would be true.

Disciple: At last all his disciples had to collect large
sums far away in Bengal and send him the
money to pay the debts, but he never reached Calcutta. I believe he died
in Puri.

Disciple:
But I heard that he was poisoned by some jealous Sadhus; he made
Sthambhan–control–on poison for some time, but
ultimately he could not prevail.

*

258

MARCH, 1940



Disciple:
Does this article show any change in Barin’s attitude?

Sri Aurobindo: It depends. He says what is uppermost in his mind, and what suits him
at the
moment, according to his
moods. But it may be a change in his attitude, but difficult to say if there
is any progress. The change may be due to his
having failed in every thing after going from here
and the Ashram growing out since. That may have
impressed him. It may be due to mental causes
also.

Disciple: He admits that he had fallen from the path and his
attitude towards Mother.
Disciple: Somebody said
that he used to speak highly of the Mother.

Disciple:
No, he was critical.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. He says things according to his own mood and what suits him. He
wrote one
book on Mother and

259

asked
Andrews for introduction. Andrews refused saying: “I know the
Mother”. About the Ashram
Moore
also refused to believe his criticisms.

Disciple: Mother says this is “a year of silence and
expectation.” For this what is to be done? Sri
Aurobindo:
Year of silence means “observe silence and be
expectant.”

Disciple:
He wants to know whether the literary work he is doing by the approval of the
Mother is
not going to interrupt the
silence especially if he goes for controversy.

Sri Aurobindo: I suppose one can do the work in silence. But he should not engage in
controversy.
He has too combative a
mind. If he goes in for controversy naturally silence will be interrupted.

Disciple If he does this sort of work and somebody
contradicts, naturally he will have to re-contradict.

Sri Aurobindo: Why? Many people criticize me. I don’t answer.
It is not necessary that he should
answer.

Disciple: N
and I decided not to convert any other people about Vedic interpretations but
to go on
repeating over and over
again our own point.

Sri Aurobindo: That is Hitler’s method.

Disciple:
That is why nobody contradicts N.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes. When people find that the opponent does not answer they lose all
interest.

Disciple: He says it is true he has lost touch with the
reality of the external world. Now if he reads
Manchester Guardian and New Stateman will it disturb his silence?

260

Sri Aurobindo: It depends on his mind. If he can read all these things in order to
know what is
going on, it is alright,
but he should not run away with any idea or programme. He was asked not to

read papers because his mind was slave to politics
and attracted by the ideas. The fundamental
peace and silence is all right, but he should bring the attitude of the
Purusha in his reading also.

Disciple: I did not know at all that he has also such
difficulties!
Sri
Aurobindo:
You thought he has
reached Supreme Siddhi!
Disciple: Not so much,
but a Cosmic Consciousness.

Sri Aurobindo: All-India consciousness. You can tell him that he must not attack or
contradict
people. When he reads
anything he must not allow his mind to run away with any ideas, but take up
the attitude of the witness and see from where
these things come. And if he does not allow the mind
to identify with any of them he will know the
right source of action and knowledge. You were
talking of Cosmic Consciousness. All these ideas are there in the
general Prana and have equal
validity
from the point of Cosmic Consciousness. They may be as much true as his own
i.e. when
Basanta Chatterji
contradicts him there is some truth in what he says. He has to see what
distortion
the mind has brought in democracy-personal
ambitions-boycott-S-he has lost his head-like Europe-part
of universal movement.

Disciple: D
also used to have many brilliant ideas e. g. common kitchen, cleaning, Baroda
city.

Sri Aurobindo: Ideas are always brilliant. Co-operation is
always possible, because each finds his
self-interest in the interest of others.

261

Disciple:
A–what he a political leader?

Sri Aurobindo: He was just beginning his career. That sort of leadership is nothing.
If you have
the gift of the gab and
power of ideas and putting form into them, you can always succeed. All
politics is a show. In British Parliament it is
the Civil service who are behind, and whose names are
never known, that really do the work. The
Ministers are only their mouthpieces except a man like
Churchill and Hore-Belisha who can do something.

Mother’s
brother, for instance, he organized the Congo land in Africa, but the Minister
got all the
credit for it. He was
one of the great colonial administrators and even when he was officer in
Equatorial Africa, sometimes Governor or Governor
General, the whole job was done by him. He
hardly had a bed and used to lie in easy chair. Now he is nearly seventy
but, as soon as the war was
declared
he went to the Office and asked for his work and now he is working eighteen
hours a day.

A is living in his mind. No “isms” or
mental programme will do, if you want to base things on the
Spirit. They are all out of count. It is the
repetition of the old mental way. Are the villagers going to
understand my philosophy? If he goes to work, he
will find himself out of touch with realities and will have the same fall as B.
B went out to revolutionize the world.

Disciple:
And he ended by revolutionizing himself.

Disciple:
These things can be only done by Government. It is better to get the
Government.

Disciple: Yes, but both constructive work and this kind of
political work can go together as Gandhi
is doing.

Sri Aurobindo: With very little success.



A is talking of common kitchen! Why not have
every thing common?
*

262

APRIL 1940

25th
April 1940

R was talking to C in the train that his
difficulty was about accepting Mother, because he said they
used to meditate together and therefore he found
it difficult to accept her.

Disciple: Nobody ever meditated with the Mother before the
Ashram came into existence in 1926.
Sri Aurobindo: Yes, even then in the beginning there were very few people.

Disciple:
Mother used to meditate with Sri Aurobindo only.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but that was individual. She was coming to
me and her position was special
even
from the very beginning. There was no comparison between others and Mother.
There were
people in the Ashram who
thought that Mother had done no Sadhana before she came to India.

*

263

MAY, 1940

20th
May 1940

Disciple:
Why Hitler says that he wants to finish this campaign before August 15*?

Sri Aurobindo: That’s a clear indication, if an indication was
necessary, that he is the enemy of
our work.

Disciple:
Is it that he fears that descent might take place on August 15th which might
make his
work more difficult?

Sri Aurobindo: This force does not believe in Divine descent, but it is a sort of
challenge that, “I
will finish
my first decisive victory before August 15th”. That shows the nature of
the conflict.

Disciple:
It does not seem to be only one being. It seems to be a camp.
Sri Aurobindo: yes. But this is the leading (spirit). That

* August 15th happens to be the birthday of Sri
Aurobindo.

264

being
has often come here to see what was being done. Did you read Richard’s book
“The Lord of
the Nations”?



Disciple:
No. I read only “To the nation”.

Sri Aurobindo: The book was never published, but he wrote it at a time when he was in
communication with that being.

Disciple: Most of these people do not believe in any
religion. They want to give up and suppress
Christianity.

Sri Aurobindo: That is what I meant when I said these people
have guarded the Barbarian in them.
What
they have got is scientific knowledge, mechanical skill, but other cultural
activities that used to be there, are all suppressed, and Hitler suppresses
them where ever he goes. He has suppressed
them in Poland, in Czechoslovakia.

Disciple: Man is only used by these people as a part of
machinery and organization.
Sri Aurobindo: Exactly so.

Disciple:
And he is talking of reviving worship of the old Norse Gods.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they are crude conceptions of the primitive instinct of mankind.
Even though
Odin is considered a God
of knowledge it is more or less primary instincts that are symbolized.

Disciple: Do these beings know the existence of the Divine
and deny it? or are they ignorant about
it?

Sri Aurobindo: It depends on the nature of the being. They know
the existence of Gods for
instance,
but they do not consider them higher than themselves.

265

Disciple: Yes, and they do not merely ignore the Gods but
claim to evolve world-order of their
own.

Sri Aurobindo: When these beings act by themselves no human power can stand against
them. It
is alright so long as there
is a question of influencing men, that is to say the Divine influence as
well as Asuric working. But when it is a question
of incarnation, as in the case of Hitler, then it is the different matter.

Disciple:
That makes the conflict between the Gods and the Asuras represented in the
Puranas very
realistic even for our
times. Because generally the Gods used to get beaten by Asuras and run for
protection either to Mahakali or to Rudra or to
Vishnu.

Sri Aurobindo: It is the intervention of the Divine that can become effective, and in
this German and Stalin affair it is the question of the descent of the whole
vital world on this earth. That is what
has puzzled most people,
specially those intellectual people who were thinking in terms of idealism. They never expected such thing and now
when it has come they don’t understand how it has come and what is to be done;
they are all puzzled.

*

22nd May 1940

Disciple:
If the Asuric forces incarnated in Hitler and others in Germany, is there no
one on this



side of allies who incarnate Divine force?

Sri Aurobindo: No. Unfortunately there is none. They are all ordinary man; there is no
one who
can receive the Force.
Perhaps Marshal Petain may be able to receive but he is too old I think.

Disciple:
Can Wegan receive?

266

Sri Aurobindo: I don’t know him; in such times if you have men who do not conform to
the
science or the rules it is an
advantage. We require men with ideas and daring. Hore Belisha would
have been a very good choice on English side. If
they had put Lord Halifax for India it would have been easy to arrive at an
understanding with the Congress. Mother also does not find anybody who can
receive.

Disciple:
Jean Herbert when he was here was very hopeful that there will be no war. The
queer
thing was that he believed
that the dictators will get whatever they ask for, only if they ask strongly
enough.

Sri Aurobindo: They could get France also if they ask strongly? Nivedita a French
lady, was
telling this time, those
French people who have gone to the war are those who have no enthusiasm
for idealism. They all seem to have gone to fight
with defeatist mentality. That way it is difficult to
succeed against Germany.

Disciple: Referred to Sir Arthur Henderson’s book
“Failure of my Mission in Germany”?
Sri Aurobindo: I have seen a review of it in the New Stateman.

Disciple:
Jwalanti was telling that in that book Sir Arthur Henderson speaks of Hitler as
a man
who works under possession.

Sri Aurobindo: Does he say that?

Disciple:
He also described the condition of a young man who is her friend’s son and who
is in
diplomatic service when he
returned from Berlin. She said that his people could not recognize him
when he came. He said that while in Germany he
felt as if he was put inside a metallic bomb and
every minute somebody was pumping more air into it so that he could not
breathe properly.

267

Sri Aurobindo: The whole general atmosphere in Germany seems to be dominated by these
forces.
Young men actually taught to
become devils. In Poland when the Poles complained to German
General about cruelty by the soldiers the General
said: Don’t complain. This is nothing. Wait, let
the Nazis come and you will know what cruelty is.

*

23rd
May 1940

National
Socialism was introduced today in England.

Sri Aurobindo: It was great revolutionary step, but for the war it could never have
passed. Because all along the English history has been the struggle for
individual liberty. And this is a

negation of all that. I believe, it must be due to
the pressure of the labour members.
Disciple:
It must be also to prevent war profiteering.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, I think so.

The question of taking Narwic arose and it was
reported that it took up position without loss of a
single soldier.

Sri Aurobindo: It must be very Ahimsak fight where both sides take up position without
shedding drop of blood.

There
was an explanation about Gandhi’s Ahimsa.

Disciple: Gandhi’s idea of Ahimsa is that he should get
killed.
Disciple: Yes, he has an almost passion for being killed.

*

268

JUNE, 1940

15 June 1940.

In
one sense one can say, history it repeating itself because Greco-Roman culture
was destroyed by
German Nordic
hordes and to-day it is again the Germans who are trying to destroy the centre
of
European culture. The Asura working behind Hitler has been giving him
very correct and remarkably accurate
guidance. He knows what is possible. That is why Hitler has never been
listening to reason. He only waits for the voice.
Till now it has guided him correctly. One mistake,
it seems, it has made it to think that when he
attacked Poland he thought that England will not go to war. Otherwise he has
direct guidance which Napoleon did not get.

The
question was put to Sri Aurobindo whether the Asuras can have the power of
vision.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they have. Vision is not only on the spiritual level. It can be on
the vital and on the subtle physical level, and can be very accurate.

269

The question was whether the Asura can see his own
end. Sri Aurobindo: No.

Disciple:
It is like the astrologers who can’t predict their own end.

Sri
Aurobindo:
No, they can predict
accurately. There are instances in which exact hour and
minute has been predicted. Instance on the point
is of the Charles of Burgendy who was taken
prisoner by Louis XI. He had made arrangements with his guards that if
he said “be in peace or
pass in
peace” then he should not be killed but if he did not give nay such sign
the astrologer who
visited the jail
where Charles was prisoner should be killed. Then, he asked the astrologer the
time of his death. He said he could not give the exact date but it was 24 hours
before the death of Louis
XI. Louis
took great care to see that he was saved, and years afterwards it came out that
actually

Louis died 24 hours after his death. This
happening Scott has described in his novel.
Disciple:
Hardhan says that the French will ultimately triumph.

Sri Aurobindo: It is not unlikely.

About
the surrender of Paris, Sri Aurobindo said: How can they allow Germans to enter
Paris
without fighting? If the old
civilization is to be destroyed, it is better that it is destroyed heroically.

Disciple: Advaitanand met some sadhak at Tiruvenamallai
who was arguing with him that
knowledge
need not be accompanied by power.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is true. It depends on whether you lean on the side of witness
Purusha or
power or both. If

270

a
man realizes the Sad aspect, the Pure Being, he may have no power. Because Pure
Being does not
act. On the contrary,
there may be those who may know many things but have no power to act.
Generally even in the mind you see that a man may
have much knowledge but he may be very
weak.
Even in the case of those who realize the power aspect the power may not be
always used.

*

17th and 18th June 1940.

It
was asked if Sri Aurobindo knows all the possibilities connected with the war.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, they are known as possibilities. We do not
accept anything as absolutely
certain.

On the 17th (curiously enough Richard Paul’s birth
day) Petain proposed an armistice and all
thought that France was lost.

Sri Aurobindo: All these heroes of the last war–how could they propose a truce? How
can they
expect anything honourable
from Hitler? It would be an end of France. They have become
decadent.

Disciple
gave the instance of the Munich crisis.

Sri Aurobindo: France was condemned then, when she did not stand by her treaty.

Disciple
gave the instance of French coins and Mother said: what coins are these? They
are the
coins of a ruined country.

Disciple: I quite understand how it must be impossible for
France to continue the war. They began
without
enthusiasm for the war, but even afterwards Government servants

271

are
seen actually wishing for such a peace! There is a soldier in the hospital who
even says “what is
the use of
fighting? for whom?

Sri Aurobindo: That is the decadent mind, when men think more of their safety and
comfortable
living and want to live
in peace at any price.

Disciple:
Is it not the action of the law of Karma that is upon these nations?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, it is their Karma. But if they can go through the suffering and
pay the price
they can wipe off their
Karma.

(Sri Aurobindo was even for the defense of Paris.
He did not like that it should have been
undefended. When a culture is going down, let it go down a little
heroically.)

But
if they give up the struggle it means they are gone.

Disciple:
Will the English continue after the French have given up?

Sri Aurobindo: I think they will. At least they are not known to give up so easily in
the past,
unless they have changed
considerably (as the French).

In the light of this, one admires the resistance
of Poland and Finland. In spite of very bad
leadership and ill-equipment they fought bravely to the end and did not
ask for terms.

I don’t think that they are lost. On the 18th
morning Churchill’s proposal was out for an
“Anglo-French Union.”

There
was panic last evening–Everybody thought France had given up. In fact due to
variety of
causes the

272

French soldiers are not fighting. They think in
terms of communism and capitalism etc. Sri
Aurobindo:
They will have chance for nothing under Hitler.

There are only two chances: either if Hitler dies
soon, then the work may be undone or if the
people last out.

Sri
Aurobindo liked Churchill’s proposal and said: English people do not like an
idea for the sake of the idea. But they have a feeling for what is possible,
what is necessary. They have a great
flexibility
in politics and they have shown it by declaring in England State-socialism (He
said, in
between, once that the
British Labour Party had secured rights for the workers, but has not been
strong in pressing the claim of India upon the
present cabinet) and this Anglo-French Union is
another move.

Disciple:
The prospect of a joint English and French Parliament is very humourous.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, the French members will be fighting among
themselves and the English will
be
shaking their heads and saying “most unparliamentary”.

Disciple:
Can the French yet resist? And if the French give up can the English resist?

Sri
Aurobindo:
Why not? That is why
we Indians cannot win. Once we are defeated, we always
think that if you are defeated you have to give
up. It is not like that. The greatness lies in not giving up the struggle and
refusing to accept the defeat as final. You can defeat me any number of times

but I am not going to give up. The
British have stood out alone against victorious powers in the
past.

If the French decided to resist,
they have the Navy

273

and Air-force intact and their
colonial army and colonies. From there they can resist till they win.

The Belgian and Holland
Governments have not given up, why should the French? And even if the
Anglo-French Union does not become permanent they
can have a very powerful federation with
Holland, Belgium, Norway, Poland, Czechoslovakia and they can request
India to join it
voluntarily as an
equal partner. That would obviate the conservative fear about making a sweeping
change in India. They have always a
fear that it is against tradition, too much out of her way.

No nation can be great on the
principle of maintaining their existence, unless it stands for some
great cause or idealism or something great. (In
this case, it is the imponderable that is more important than the ponderable).

16th June 1940

When
P referred to Churchill’s speech yesterday explaining that the French really
lost the battle in
Flanders, where
they lost 25 divisions and said that it comes to about at the most 3 lakhs, SriAurobindo
said that French divisions are smaller of about 15 or 18 thousands each. So P
wondered
what happened to other 17
lakhs.

Sri Aurobindo: That is what I don’t understand how they complain
of want of men. Chamberlain
and
Daladiar both seem to be the same. I do not know whether it is stupidity or
treachery.

Somebody raised a question of
complaint that British were not sending sufficient men.

Sri Aurobindo: You must remember that Britain is not a country
with conscription. They have not
got a big

18

274

standing army. It takes time to
prepare and equip men, and yet they sent 4 lakhs with the best
equipment they could have which was not small
force for England, and they were obliged to retreat
and take back 3 1/2 lakhs.

Disciple: It seemed that after the fall of Paris Britishers
have sent 4 lakhs of men.

Sri Aurobindo: No, there
seems to be some confusion. They could not have sent so many because before the
Renau cabinet resigned Churchill said that he had sent 3 divisions already and
would be
sending in all one lakh by
the end of June. But as usual these over sensitive French military men in
their over-suspiciousness did not believe in
Churchill’s words.

P referred to composition of the
new cabinet as out and out rightists cabinet. Sri
Aurobindo:
It does not even represent the whole of France.

Disciple: The retreat has become a rout.



Sri Aurobindo: Because the army has no organization left and because the morale was
broken first
by the fall of Paris and
secondly by the peace talks. Everybody thinks, “What is the use of dying
to-day if to-morrow they are going to conclude
peace.” There is no heart in the fighting.

Disciple:
At that rate they will find after some time, they can’t oppose Hitler.

Sri Aurobindo: It is as Mother says that Hitler does not want to give his terms
before he destroys
the French army.
It seems the same condition that was in time of Napoleon III when France lost
the
war. It is due to party quarrels
and jealousies. Politicians trying to meddle in the

275

government
instead of doing their own work. Their dissatisfaction with England is quite
meaningless because Churchill clearly said that it
would take some months to make the loss of
materials in the Flanders. It is no use putting an ill-equipped army
against Germans.

Gamalin
was a fraud and Weigand has not proved exceptional. If some military genius had
arisen
he could have saved the
situation. It seems that Hitler is going to ask for those colonies from
France that are near British possession. In that
case he may ask for Pondicherry.

Disciple:
Does he know anything about Pondicherry?

Sri
Aurobindo:
O yes, they know
everything. Children are taught most wonderful details about the
cities and even villages in England and France.
They have got a school where they train future
Governors of England. So far as organization is concerned there are
only two people who cannot be
surpassed:
The Germans and the Japanese. In the last war they found maps in Germany of
English
villages in which the
position of trees and houses were also indicated.

There was a reference to Hiranya-garbha which I
took to him. He had explained two days back that
“Hiranya-garbha has nothing to do with Supermind”, besides
“Hiranya-garbha is a being while
Supermind
is not a being.”

Disciple:
It is a plane of being or a plane of consciousness. A world of its own.

Sri Aurobindo: Exactly so. Hiranya-garbha refers to the universal subjective, while
the “Virat” is universal objective. In the Rigveda there is only one
reference to “Hiranya-garbha” (10 Mandal 121
when I read the hymn to him.)

276

Sri Aurobindo: Here Hiranya-garbha is a God. It is as the creator.

I
said there is a Hymn in R. V. II. 12 which is also familiar in wording and
conception but which
refers to Indra.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, there are several hymns in which the various Gods like Agni,
Indra, etc. are
spoken of as
creators. But it is not the same thing as what I call the “Supermind as a
creator”. The
word in the old
philosophy which can convey the idea of the Supermind as a creator is
“Pragna”–the Knower. He creates for
himself, but Pragna is spoken of as superconscient because it
is above the ordinary mental consciousness and
ordinarily one enters it in Samadhi, unless one does



like
us to bring it down into the ordinary consciousness. Supermind also is
superconscient but that
is because
it has not yet been attained. I remember in jail, Hiranya-garbha being
equivalent to
Taijas, while Pragna
is prior to that; we used to call one fellow who had a strong imagination,
“Hiranya-garbha,” that is to say, the
man of strong dream.

Then
I showed him the two references S. V. III. 2 in which Hiranya-garbha is derived
from Rudra
and S. V. II. 4 in which
“Kopila” is said to be Hiranya-garbha–both of these Sri Aurobindo
said
were not clear in their meaning
of Hiranya-garbha and they were quite different in their sense from
Rigveda.

*

22nd June. 1940.

About
the report of military correspondent that the French thought in terms of French
fortress and
positional war. They did
not believe the importance of tanks and aeroplanes even though they knew
that the tanks decided their victory last time.

277

Sri Aurobindo: And Gamlin had to go because he was so much accustomed to the idea of
fortress that he did not know what to do when the Germans came in through
Flanders. Gamlin and Daladier
both
are so evidently weak that one is surprised how they were regarded as strong
men.
Government after Government in
France was appointing Daladier as Foreign Minister, while he did
nothing in fact for preparing for war and so also
Chamberlain. You have only to look at their
photographs at Munich
conference where you can see fierce cunning and crafty Hitler while Daladier appears like one who can be broken in no
time, while Chamberlain looks like a cunning
fool who thinks he was getting his point, while really he was not.

There
was a Nazi incident in Uruguay.

Disciple:
Will that be an excuse for American to join the war?

Sri Aurobindo: If it is true that Germans have given a threat
and if Uruguay Government shoots
some
of the Nazis and Germans declare war on Uruguay then Monroe Doctrine will come
in full
force. But I don’t suppose it
will go to that extent.

About
armistice discussion between French and Germany Sri Aurobindo said if they ask
for
capitulation of navy and air
force then it will be very hard for England. The English have their
air-force but do they have sufficient tanks? A big
invasion of England seems unlikely and if the
English can last till the end of the year then Germany may be defeated.

Russia is very foolish in putting its pressure on
Turkey to keep out of war. There is bound to be a clash between Russia and
Germany about the Balkans and at that time if the English are defeated
there will be no chance of blockade.

278

23rd June. 1940

On hearing about
the terms of French armistice which included putting all the French resources
at
the disposal of Hitler Sri
Aurobindo said, it is an “act of basest treachery”. When he heard
about

the Rumanian Government becoming Nazi he said
“the whole world seems to have been taken by a
wave of selfishness, cowardice and
treachery.”

*

25th June 1940

Disciple:
We say everything happens, happens according to the Divine Will i. e. nothing
happens
without it. So the defeat of
France happened according to the Divine Will i. e. according to Sri
Aurobindo’s will!

Sri Aurobindo: “Everything” does not mean every individual act or event. You
can say Sri Aurobindo’s will on another level of consciousness willed it. For
instance, you can’t say that I
willed
to break my leg!!

People
think of God as a kind of super-dictator. The Divine Will lays down general
lines–but in actual play (Lila) it consents to limitations that are
self-imposed. It has also to pay the price in the
play of forces. Otherwise you can argue that Rama
willed that Sita may be taken away by Ravana!
Christ knew that he had to be crucified for the work and yet something
in him wished it may be
otherwise.

So,
it is not all my “will”; it is the Karma of France and England also
that is working.

I
am almost getting sympathy and admiration for the British which I never had
before. They are
standing up alone against
Hitler’s power without allies–just as they did in Napoleon’s time.

279

Disciple:
You wrote in a letter to Dilip that your will never fails.

Sri Aurobindo: No, I did not say that. What I said what the I have not seen my will
fail (so far as
the major events of
world were concerned) in major events until now.

Disciple:
What events?

Sri Aurobindo: For instance, Ireland’s freedom. I wanted Alsace Lorraine to go to
France. They
were not fulfilled at
the time when I willed–many have been fulfilled when I no longer wanted them.
For instance, I wanted to break the British Empire. Now Hitler wants to do it.
But I don’t
want it, as it would mean
the triumph of Hitler. Wherever he has gone, he has destroyed the higher
values of life.

If I want that British must not be destroyed it
is not because I like the British Empire, but I see that
it would push back the work tremendously. It is
not mental utility but there are other utilities also.

Disciple:
Does not the Divine Will foresee?

Sri Aurobindo: The Divine Will foresees everything, lays down lines of development
and allows
the play of forces to work
out and in that play of forces it consents to certain things. It does not will
for each individual fact.

It
may include also running away like Krishna who fled from Kala Yavana.
Disciple: Is the Divine limited?

Sri Aurobindo: Every one who descends for a spiritual purpose, will have to be
limited: of course,
such a
limitation will be self-imposed. That is to say, he will consent to the rules of
the play of
forces.

280

Disciple:
Now Hitler is giving bread to German workers.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, he says the German workers are without food
and he is going to feed them. It is the Asura spreading his influence like
that. He promises that he will bring peace and world-order
etc.

The new order would be that the British should
declare dominion status and pass some parts to
Germany.

*

When
Sri Aurobindo was told about the efficiency of air-raid shelter supplied by
Anderson in
England and after knowing
how it worked Sri Aurobindo said, now the greater preoccupation of
human mind seems to be to find out means of
destroying each other and of escaping destruction.
Man is said to be a rational animal but there is
very little reason in these activities. It is of same
kind as ingenuity of the animal. What man is doing
now is only extension of animal ingenuity.
Formerly he used to destroy with swords and spears and other
instruments.

Disciple: They could not do it so well as now, and you can
imagine they are spending lakhs of
rupees
for one machine or one bomb.

Disciple
referred to R. Gregg’s article in the ‘Harijan’ in which he strongly advocates
the adoption
of khadi in Wardha
scheme by European nations.

Sri Aurobindo: But they were destroying each other when they
were using Charakha in the past?
Disciple:
Perhaps not on such a large scale.

Sri Aurobindo: There are cases of the whole population of the
city killed by their primitive
method.

281

Disciple: Instance of Baghdad where Ghangiskhan put up a
tower made of one lakh of human
skulls.

*

27th
June, 1940.

27th Chapter of
“Life Divine”. The publishers in consultation with the professor of
English
changed “founded
in” into “founded on”. Sri Aurobindo said when I told him about
the change, “I
have already used
that in the previous paragraph and they have suggested “on” and I
have not
accepted the suggestion. I
have used there “in” purposely. These people think that they know
English better than I do. They are habituated to
use current phrases and words in their usual sense
but they do not know that a good writer does not
always use current phrases and words in their
usual meaning.

Disciple: But they do it after consulting a Professor.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but the Professor is an Indian. He is not an
Englishman. It is these people
who have learnt the language that want to
use current phrases. As Richard Stephenson said, “English language is like a woman who loves you for taking liberty
with her.” Once Sir D.-V. sent
me
one of his books and on every page I found 40 such worn out expressions, what
they call cliche
and all the Indians
are praising the English. Perhaps an Englishman would have said, “What a
horrible style!”

*

282

JULY, 1940

21st July 1940

There was a reference to C. R’s article about the
necessity of force for maintaining a state.

Disciple: Blunchli in his book called “The
State” puts it down as a fundamental principle. Every state is founded on
force and President Wilson in his book also maintains, a little apologetically,
that all human states are founded on
force.

Sri Aurobindo: Of course, so long as man is not too much cowed
down or has not evolved beyond
his
present condition and is too high to use force, force will be indispensable.

Disciple: In the Supramental creation will there be any
force?

Sri Aurobindo: No. Because there you are supposed to go beyond
the human conditions. But for
ordinary
human

283

purpose the state is bound to employ force. Only
there are two types of institutions, one which
employs force pure and simple and another which is based on agreement
and force is employed to
maintain
the agreement. That is the difference between democracy and dictatorship. The
weakness of the democracy is that its rule is based on majority and so there
will always be a minority that is
not
satisfied with the conditional things. And if the minority loves the hope of
becoming majority it
might resort to
force.

*

284

AUGUST 1940 3rd August 1940

There was a letter from K. P. to Dilip in which
he expressed his opinions and ideas about the
present war, His points were:–

1.    The war is already fought and decided on the
inner planes.

2.   
Mankind is responsible for rise of the Asuric
forces.

3. Each much fight the lower forces and side with
the Divine in himself. After reading the letter Sri
Aurobindo said: It is quite alright that the
struggle between the forces is worked out on other planes
before it is projected here.

Disciple: He means like the Gita where Sri Krishna says
that Kauravas were already killed.
Disciple:
So the result is already decided.

285

Sri Aurobindo: I would not admit as he seems to admit that everything was fixed. Of
course, the
issue has been decided
by the Divine vision and there can be no change in that. But nobody knows
that decision of the Divine. And when there is a
struggle between the forces it is always possible to
change the balance of forces. True, things are
decided above and happen in the physical afterwards,
but not exactly in the same way. There can be a
variation. Of course, there can be no variation in
what is decided by the Supreme Vision.

In
a way, it is quite true that we mankind have made the world what it is.

Disciple:
K. P. seems to say that Hitler is a result of tendencies which men have been
harbouring in
themselves. He forgets that the being behind him may also
be responsible for spreading the influence.

Disciple: K. P. feels that England will not be defeated in
this war because he says they have some
purpose to fulfill in the world. So long as they do that they will not
be defeated.

Sri Aurobindo: That is true, though certain forces have been working for the
destruction of the
British Empire. I
myself once worked for it but it is quite possible to change the action because
if
the same result can be achieved
in a different manner then the destruction of the British Empire is
not necessary. I myself would not have minded any
result to the British Empire, if its destruction did not mean victory for
Hitler. But that changes the whole aspect.

Disciple:
Is this not all due to the necessity of a new world order?

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, evidently. Question is what is going to be the world-order and how
is it to be
brought about?

286

Sri Aurobindo then
spoke of the psychic attitude to be adopted by every one. That is useful for
attaining much higher spiritual result. There
have always been a small number of people who have
embodied that change. But I do not know how that
can change the whole world conditions. Or
perhaps by psychic he means mental and vital changes. Even that I don’t
know how they can come
about if
Hitler wins. For the present, everybody seems to be taking refuge in cowardice
and trying
to save his own skin and
if the change desired is to come after Hitler wins then perhaps it would be
after great suffering and through reactions on the part of men to that
oppression, or even it may not
come
at all, or come after the Pralaya, whereas by changing the balance of forces
the British
Empire can be saved, and
if it can win then the new order might take place more quietly and also
the mental and vital changes necessary will take
place without much disturbance and so much
destruction.

Disciple: Do you mean that the Supreme Vision’s decision
can be different from the decision of the subtle worlds?

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily, but between the vision of the Supreme and its
realization here,
there are many
possible variations. In fact, if you speak of “destiny” then you must
know that there are different layers of destiny. There is, for instance what
the astrologers call the destiny in the
physical. There can also be destiny in the vital. By bringing vital
force into play the destiny in the
physical
can be changed. So also by bringing mental forces into play–though it is more
difficult–what seems to be the vital destiny can
be changed. That is why astrologers hardly prove
themselves right because they look at the physical whereas there can be
a variation in the play of
forces of
the mental, vital and physical planes. On these a certain play of forces may
show as if the
destiny was in favour
of one or the other group of forces. And this balance can be changed.

287

Disciple:
But if the Supreme vision is there then the new order is bound to come. Is it
not?

Disciple:
But at present before the Supreme has a chance there are many others who are
ready with their own ideas of the new order.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, everybody seems to be busy with his own world-order and nobody
knows
about the decision of the
Supreme.

Disciple: But how can you say nobody knows? You said that
Supramental descent is bound to
come.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but we have not yet become Supramental. I
know it will come, but I have not
fixed
the date for it. It may be to-morrow. I don’t know!

Disciple:
It seems that Mother said to some one that the Light will descend when there
will be all
darkness around and no
possibility in sight for man.

Sri Aurobindo: That was not her own words. She was only repeating an ancient prophesy.

Disciple: I
suppose world is sufficiently dark even now, for it is only England that is
standing in the way of Hitler’s triumph.

Sri Aurobindo: Did you not see the Mother’s prayer for this year? It is quite clear;
at any rate,
those who received it in
France perhaps know now what it meant.

*

18th
August 1940

There
was a talk about the music of Bhismadeva. N started the topic by stating that
Tagore long
ago started a campaign
against classical music saying that it was

288

dead.
The reason he gave was that classical music was only a performance of mere
technic and
cleverness; there was no
soul in it. Tagore therefore started emphasizing the importance of words
and their meaning in music. He almost said that
words were preferable to notes. Even Dilip
strongly supported this argument of Tagore in his articles.



Sri Aurobindo: If it was only the exercise and exhibition of
technique and mere skill on the part of the classical musician, then there was
no real music in it.

Disciple:
For musical appreciation the sound value, the rhythm, harmony etc. are quite
enough.
There is no need of words or
meaning for the appreciation of music.

Sri Aurobindo: Like all other arts the music has its own medium–it is sound–it
stands by itself. If it depended on words or on poetry then it would be
poetical music but not pure music.

Disciple: The classical musicians were only performing the
gymnastics of sound and Tagore said
that
there was need of fine and beautiful words for music.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, but if it is gymnastics of sound it is not
music. Music then would be only a
commentary
on words!

Disciple:
They say that the remedy for reviving music is to give value to word and
meaning.

Sri Aurobindo: The conditions are such because classical music
has degenerated but it does not mean that it should not be revived; and the
remedy is not to give value to words or poetry, but to
restore the soul of music. If words are
indispensable to the appreciation of music then how can an
Englishman hear Italian music and appreciate
it?–because he does not understand a word of music.

289

Disciple: Tagore is very particular about the tune of his
own songs and nobody is allowed to make
any change in the notation of his song. That is why Dilip does not sing
his song.

Sri Aurobindo: I believe Tagore is not much of a musician, is he?

Disciple: By no means, because he happens to be great man
in other things and has a big name
therefore
nobody opposes his claims in fields where he does not know anything.

Sri Aurobindo: It is more or less like his paintings.

Disciple:
Not so bad nor so extravagant perhaps.

Disciple:
Dilip also thinks that beautiful words are necessary for music.

Sri Aurobindo: That is because he is more of a singer than a
musician. Singing is an art by itself.
Disciple:
Appreciation of pure music requires also training.

Disciple:
Everybody cannot appreciate or form a critical judgement about music. There has
to be
training and also aesthetic
faculty. One can see in Bhishmadave and Biren that they have not
merely technical perfection and rhythm but also
they enter into the spirit of music. And there one can see that it is the
notes,–the musical value of notes–that create the atmosphere specially in the
case of Biren who merely by playing
on string instrument succeeds in creating a fine atmosphere.

Sri Aurobindo: If words were indispensable to music then most of the European and the
best of it
which is without words
would not be called music at all. In pure music words are absolutely not
necessary. If you can’t have



pure
music without word then one can also say that one cannot paint a subject which
is not literary.

Disciple:
Beethoven’s symphonies are only musical notations and played with the violin
and piano. One of the reasons why North Indians fail, or find it difficult, to
appreciate South Indian Music is
because
they are prevented by words; also perhaps because South Indian Music is more
intellectual. When you hear B’s singing you see
that he is conscious of the notes only, and the
musical value of them–he is not conscious of the words and their
meaning. And whatever he wants
to
express in his music either an emotion or a state of consciousness he does it
through notes and
not through words.
His very gestures show that he is working with notes.

Sri Aurobindo: It is fortunate that modern European music has not suffered the same
fate as
modernist painting and poetry;
the moderns have not bee able to spoil the European music. It is
difficult to have cubism in music.

Disciple:
It is difficult to throw about cubes of sound because they are sure to hurt the
ear.

Disciple:
Some people say that Dilip’s music is more spiritual while that of BH and other
musicians is not spiritual.

Disciple: That is because Dilip is singing religious songs
and Bhajans.
Disciple: Can pure music be spiritual?

Sri Aurobindo: Of course.

Disciple:
What I have found in Dilip’s music is that the atmosphere he creates is not due
to his
music but to something
else,–perhaps to his personality or the being that is in him. I have also seen
that if one goes to his music

291

with
the idea of expecting sound values and rhythms he is likely to be disappointed.

Disciple:
So far as the spiritual atmosphere is concerned he does not require a great
musician to
produce it. A spiritual
person singing a very ordinary song can create a spiritual atmosphere.

Sri Aurobindo: That is true. Similar is the case with a poem which may be
common-place but a
clever
elocutionist can make much out of it.

That
is why I do not grant the contention of the modernist poet who says that in
order to appreciate
his rhythm you
must hear the poem recited by him. A clever elocutionist can produce a rhythm
where there is none in the original.

Disciple:
Some people say that they like Dilip’s poetry when he recites it but they
cannot
appreciate it when they read
it themselves. It is also difficult to appreciate his poetry unless one
known the rhythms and new turns which he has
introduced, because his rhythms are quite different
from those of Tagore.

Sri Aurobindo: What I have found in Dilip’s poetry is that it is mental poetry
connected with
Bengali poetry of
pre-Tagorian era. Perhaps it is due to his father’s influence which was also
intellectual. What I mean to say is that Tagore
introduced a new element of feeling and imagination

in
Bengali poetry; as he is a genius his poetry is beautiful but much of what is
written under
Tagore’s influence is
wishy-washy stuff, that is to say, it is poetry without any backbone. There is
no sound experience behind it. Even in Tagore you find that his idea is
diffused into seventy or
eighty
lines yet it does not come out clearly, though the idea is there. In
pre-Tagorian poetry they had clear intellectual ideas to express and they
expressed them poetically. Dilip’s poetry has two
things: the subject and

292

the treatment. Generally the subject is an idea
which he develops, an intellectual thing which he
expresses in poetic form; and his technique is a
departure both from Tagore and the old tradition.

Disciple: In his novel-writing also it is found that
Shorot Chatterji was far superior to Tagore as a
story writer.

Disciple: But he criticized Dilip’s story on the ground
that there was very little action in his story. In fact he said that story much
have a story, not mere discussions. But in Tagore’s own story there is very
little action. They are also what are called the intellectual novels.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, I found in Dilip’s story, when I turned over
the pages, that somebody or other
was
talking on every page.

Disciple:
Or sometimes there are long letters in the novel and interminable replies.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, all sort of things that are not native to
the purpose of the novel are being put
into
it by the moderns. So, instead of writing a pamphlet they write a novel, instead
of delivering a sermon they write a story, even they write a story for
journalistic purpose. It is like Bernard Shaw
writing his dramas. All his characters are meant only to represent
different sides of questions which he takes up in his drama.

*

293

SEPTEMBER,
1940

15th
September 1940

Disciple: Has the individual no reality except as a
puppet? Sri Aurobindo: That is
Shanker’s stand.

Disciple:
Another question is “If the Divine is already there and does everything
then why yoga?”
Because Sri
Krishna says to Arjuna in the Gita that you have only to become
Nimitta–instrument.
So the
Christian’s criticism is that the Individual is meaningless–without any
justification or fulfillment. Gita is preaching pure mechanism or
unconsciousness.

Sri Aurobindo: But Gita does not say that you are “compelled” to become the
Nimitta. It says
“Bhava”–“become!”
but it does not say that you have no existence except as Nimitta.

Even
if Arjuna does not become the Nimitta Sri Krishna says that he will do it in his
own way.

294

Even when you find that the Divine has decreed
the result, it is the result that is decreed but not the
Nimitta, that is, anything else could have been
the Nimitta.

The Individual – Universal, the Transcendental are
the One in different positions. “I am the Lord in
each” says the Gita.

Disciple:
If Divine does everything then we have to conclude that ignorance is unreal.

Sri Aurobindo: Ignorance is not unreal; it is real, that is to say, there is a Truth
that corresponds to
it.

Disciple: The aim of spiritual Sadhana is freedom from
ego, from bondage of ego. What is to be
done after that?

Sri Aurobindo: It is the first indispensable step. But there are many possibilities
after that
freedom. For example:–

1.   
He may remain
confined to his own nature or to the apparent ego in nature–though free.

2.   
or, he may
open equally to Cosmic forces and acts as Bala, Jada, Pishacha or Unmatta.*

3.   
or, he may
be one with the Divine and act and would be free not to act. In case he acts,
he is the
individual centre of the
Cosmic for Divine action. He is one with the Divine yet remains a different
self–yet free. Cosmic forces would be available
to him for Divine action.



* Infant-like, inert-like, devil-like, or
eccentric-like.

295

NOVEMBER, 1940

28th November 1940

Letters
from Kabul and from Ella Maillard; change in attitude to Gabriel; effective
representation
of Ella.

Gandhi’s
will – or political will was read (brought by Abhaya Deva) distributed to
Gandhi Seva
Sangh – spoken orally and
taken down; after hearing the whole letter Sri Aurobindo said:

Something
in him takes delight in suffering for its own sake. Even the prospect of
suffering seems
to please him though
he puts in a lot of ethics with his justification, the fact is that something
in
him enjoys suffering.

2.
Secondly, if he knows that to the British Government 50 Gandhis would not
matter–what does he propose then to achieve politically by his fast? He even
knows that the British people are not
even
going to consider the possibility of Ahimsa!

296

It is Christian
idea that has taken hold of him. Besides he seems to think that after him his
theory
and creed of non-violence
would continue. I don’t think so. A few people would be there but anything like
a wide scale influence like that of his personality does not seem possible.

I don’t object to the world-order but I object to
Hitler’s world order. “Psychology” would remain
unpublished so long as the war lasts because I
must known whether Hitler goes up or goes down.

All
European publications have been stopped on account of the war.

My
contribution to the war fund was not my taking part in politics. It was in view
of much wider
issues which I have
spoken of in my letter,–the issues of human culture and individual and
national
liberty; and as the English
are the only race that stand up for it, I support them.

“Justice”–Englishmen won’t be acting
according to justice, why should they? Which nation acts on
the principles of justice? Why should we expect
them to fulfill a standard which we ourselves can’t
satisfy.

Indian
problem has been very badly bungled by Jinna, and Congress and Mahasabha. They
have
not been able to play their
cards well. That is why they are losing the game.

What is justice after all? To the Socialist
denial of all property, liquidation of capitalism is justice.
To the capitalist something else is justice.

Congress is asking for freedom of expression but
it does not give its own members freedom to
express their ideas, if they are against their official policy.

297

Two
ways of securing freedoms by force, by revolution–that cannot succeed so long
as we have Jinnahs etc. The only other course is compromise. There you have to
give and take,–know your
opponent.
Generally, the English do not want to go to the extreme or to be continuously
repressing.
After a time they like to
come to a compromise. Generally they arrange the bargain in such a way that
they gain in the compromise. They want to be respected. They don’t like to be
called bad.

Fast and Satyagraha changing the heart of the
opponent is absurd. What it can do is to exert
pressure and secure some concession.

But
it can’t succeed if it challenges the very existence of the other force. For
instance, Gandhi
succeeded in
settling the labour question because the capitalists did not want to earn
public
obloquy. So they gave
concession to his demands. But suppose instead of some demands of
amelioration he had asked them to hand over the
mills to the workers then he would not have
succeeded.

All the talk of change of heart is absurd. If it
changes anything, it may change only the mind–not the heart. The man may not
like to face the consequences and so would give in without changing
the
heart.

The
English have also some constitutional mind. So once they give, they don’t go back
upon their
word. They don’t want
anyone else to walk into India when they walk out of it. They are afraid of
that happening if they leave India now. It would certainly mean civil war and
any other power can

walk into India. They have proclaimed that they
would grant Dominion Status which amounts to
Independence except one or two matters like defense and foreign affairs.

298

They
don’t care for world opinion or India because the opinion they consider
important is American
opinion. But
as all are afraid of Hitler they won’t at present speak against England for her
Indian
Policy. And also they are not
quite wrong when they say that the Indians must settle their own
differences. The Lucknow pact has become a great
political blunder. The Mahommedans,–they
want to rule India.

If
Gandhi undertakes his fast for self purification or for spiritual end it is
something, but how can
he gain
political power by that?

It is British Government that gives way to such
pressure. Against Germany, Japan, Russia or even
France that has no chance.

Virawala
a match for Gandhi. Vallabhbhai’s life attempted after Amreli and Rajkot.

Jail going is useful because it can help a nation
in solidifying itself and in organizing itself. But if
the programme is carried out ultimately, the
ruling power, if it is oppressive, can be thrown out by
the organization etc.

*

29th November 1940

Kasturbhai’s
Arvind Mills of Ahmedabad was using Sri Aurobindo’s picture on their products,
without any permission and without paying any
consideration. One of the picture was shown to Sri
Aurobindo and it was represented to him that
legal action could be taken against the Mills. On
seeing the picture Sri Aurobindo said:

299

“The other one made me look like a criminal.
This one makes me look like an imbecile–not only
the eyes but the mouth;–can one do these
things?”

Sri Aurobindo did not
want to press the legal aspect of the matter.

300

DECEMBER 1940

31st December 1940.

Disciple:
On what does receptivity depend?

Sri Aurobindo: On quietude, openness and wideness. One can’t receive, if one is
disturbed and
also what he receives
can’t be effective without quietude. Quietude is of the Mind, the Vital and the
Physical. The most difficult is of
she Inconscient. One can develop openness by Will and instill quietude also by
throwing away all disturbance by aspiration, will, effort, etc.



301

JANUARY, 1941 4th January 1941

Sri Aurobindo: Inconscient, what is inconscient? There is
nothing below the Inconscient. It is
from
the Inconscient that Matter takes form. Everything has its basis in the
Inconscient. As the
work is going on
in the Inconscient the difficulties from there arise,–various diseases, etc.

It
is the stuff of all material world. Inconscient has its own power. It has
concrete thoughts and
ideas of its
ignorance and in order to combat them, one has to bring down concrete higher
Force.

Disciple: What about “In tune with the Infinite”
in which he says: “I am infinite power. It is
pouring and pouring in me.”

Sri Aurobindo: What about it? You tried?

Disciple:
Yes, I am as I was.

302

Sri Aurobindo: It looks very much like Coue’s method. Disciple: Can it work?

Sri Aurobindo: It is one way of opening the consciousness to
the Force. I don’t know if it can be
successful
all throughout.

Disciple: You said to D that his keeping the attitude that
“I am the child of the Mother and SriAurobindo–nothing can oppose
me” was quite proper.

Sri Aurobindo: That is the central faith which one is required to have in this Yoga.
If one can
make that faith living in
all parts of the being then it would be quite alright. But the body says, ‘I
have
pain–I am suffering.’ It has that power of Ignorant idea from the Inconscient.
After completing the work in the
Inconscient, the higher ranges of the Supramental consciousness would
be brought down.

Disciple: There is a proposal for introducing a course in
Indian Philosophy as a subject in the
University.

Sri Aurobindo: There is no objection to their doing that but it should not be
compulsory. It should
not be called
a course in Metaphysics and Theology. Life Divine is not a Theology! Further,
it should be kept optional. Religious instructions should not be made
compulsory. It does not
necessarily
develop spiritually; many people come to spiritual life through atheism.
Religious
instruction makes man
narrow, sectarian, etc. The objection to this scheme is that it is academic. It
would lose all its like and become
dry.

*

14th
January 1941



Sri Aurobindo had seen a volume of Cezanne and one
of the painters of the 20th Century
representing
the most modern trends of artistic movement in France.

303

Cezanne had found “remarkable” models
for his portraits. All of them were very fine and showed
power.

He didn’t know drawing and so some of his things
were imperfect. Colour is everything. (I showed
him the small volume on Cezanne). He liked it better because of the
colour plates.

In
the evening he said he had liked Matisse also.

He found three things in modern art – 1.
Ugliness, 2. Vulgarity, or what might be called coarseness,
3. Absurdity.

In
their nude studies it is very low sexuality which they bring out. They all call
it “Life”–but it is
not
life. Even in the most ugly corner there is something fine and beautiful that
comes and saves it. It shows France has gone down.

To
create form by colour only,–that is a matter of technique and one can accept
it.

It started with Cezanne–but even there the
beginning is already there in his study of the nude.
There is too much of a genius to be positively
ugly.

When they go further even in the application of
their theories they become absurd.
What
they mean by “inner” is “subconscient”, lower
“vital”.

There
is no objection to suppressing the unessentials in a work of art–all great
artists do it. To
retain the
“essentials only”–Fauvism.

*

304

24th
January 1941

Life
of Blake with many of his etchings was shown to Sri Aurobindo. He had not liked
them very
much when a few of them
were shown to him some days back. During daytime when he saw them
he
said that they were merely “dramatic” and “imaginative”
rather than “creation of art.” He remarked
that English art in general was more a result of “mental imagination and
less satisfying as a work of true art.” The “Death of a white
horse” looks like a violent angry old man, and the horse
is also wild and angry. “I can’t say I’m
impressed.” If you can compare his work with the etchings
of Rembrandt, you will see the difference between
true artistic creation and imaginative work.

I related Lawrence Binyon’s remarks in the
preface that these works make an impression on the
mind and don’t so much appeal to the aesthetic
senses and so you are disappointed when you see
them again.

He
was glad to note that Lawrence Binyon agreed with him in this respect.

“I liked some
of his paintings” he said “especially his representation called
“the murder.” It is a
great
work. You see that it represents murder. That is art.

In
his poetry, too, I was rather disappointed, except “Book of Thel”
(journey to Thel) and some of
his
lyrics–his poetry also is not satisfying. It is like his etchings “You
find it rhetorical”–Durer
also
was a great etcher. The claim was that he used to paint or etch these things
under inspiration.

“There is a realm of the stretch of vital
romantic from which you can get these things. That period
comes in Yoga also. But these things are not deep
and profound.”

305

The symbolism which he claims to have evolved for
the complete explanation and interpretation of
Christianity looked very elaborate to me.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, all that may be
true but it is not poetry. Middleton Murray and some others try to make so much
of his poetry. It is the same you find people trying to indicate that the names
of certain countries stand for
certain activity and certain contribution, and that even individual
names (of Gods).

306

1941 OR 1942

Disciple: Does the feminine aspect (of the Divine)
correspond to love, Devotion and surrender?
Sri Aurobindo: No, not necessarily.

Disciple:
Does not Satchidananda love?

Sri Aurobindo: No, that is Krishna Prem’s idea, perhaps.

Disciple:
There is no reason to associate these with the feminine aspect because he
associates these
with it.

Disciple: Receptivity includes these things; it is only a
way of representing the inner life of the
woman.

Sri Aurobindo: Because the female is passive, dependent,
(passively active) while the male is
active,
strong and self-reliant.

Disciple:
The Vaishnavas look upon all souls as Gopis and so it seems that the feminine
aspect in
all corresponds to

307

the
element of love, devotion, etc. because they take this path.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, if you accept their idea. But that is not the whole idea.

Disciple:
It cannot be said that the male aspect is without love, devotion and surrender.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, that is so. Only,
it is of different nature. Man, for instance, may be devoted to
a woman but that is not the same thing as a
woman’s devotion to man. And the Vaishnava outlook

is not the whole of the feminine aspect. There
are other aspects of the woman. Love is not the only
aspect of the woman.

Disciple:
It will also have to include Tantric idea of the Shakti.

Sri Aurobindo: Quite so.

Disciple:
But Krishna Prem says that both these should be equal in all men, is it true?

Sri Aurobindo: What do you mean by true? If you mean ‘true’ in fact then you can say
it is not
true. He says “it
should be” but “should be” is not “what is.”

Disciple:
Is the idea correct?

Sri Aurobindo: That is his idea that it should be so.

Disciple:
Perhaps he means that in an ideal case these two should be equal.

Disciple:
Krishna Prem also says that Grace and Tapasya are complimentary. No one of them
is to
be stressed. Girish Ghosh used
to say to Ramkrishna that he left everything for Ramkrishna to do
(for him); and it seems he was very much changed.

308

Disciple:
What I heard is that Girish found at the end that he had not been able to give
his burden
over to Ramkrishna.

Sri Aurobindo: You mean he made no effort himself?

Disciple:
I suppose so, or he found at the end that somehow or other he had not left the
whole thing
to Ramkrishna.

Disciple:
That means, if one has that living faith he can do without Tapasya. C also says
that he
does not believe in Tapasya.
He believes in Grace.

Disciple: I do not mean that one should indulge in lower
nature while depending or believing in
Grace.
But otherwise I don’t believe in Tapasya.

Disciple: Yes, but if we want something then we have to
make some effort or straining for that
thing.
Some effort is inevitable.

Sri Aurobindo: (to C) What do you mean by Tapasya?

Disciple: It has the sense of effort. For example, the mind
is wandering about: then one has to
make
an effort to concentrate it. This is difficult.

Sri Aurobindo: That Tapas means something difficult is the popular idea. It means
most often sitting on nails, standing on the head etc., But that is not
correct. Tapas can be for something one
likes or wants. You gather the energy for the object.

Disciple: When one sits in meditation the mind is wandering
about and one has to gather it. This is
difficult.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, but something in
you wants to do it. You want it, is it not?

Disciple:
It is the gathering of force of consciousness for a particular purpose.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, you gather up all the energy and put it on a
particular point.
Disciple: Even for gathering up some effort is necessary.

Sri Aurobindo: If you want to achieve the object some effort
will be necessary for achieving it.
Disciple:
Some men may find it easy to meditate for many hours.

Sri
Aurobindo:
Yes, but that requires
concentration of energy. All effort is not unpleasant. For
instance, a man who plays cricket has to concentrate on the ball, on the bat,
wicket, fielding etc.

Disciple: That is easy comparatively because the man finds
interest in it.
Disciple: Another man may find that effort difficult.

Sri Aurobindo: It is said in the Upanishads that God created
the world by Tapas. It was not that he
found
it difficult to create the world, but he had to make the effort.

Disciple: There is an instance given of concentration as
when a lady goes about doing all sorts of
works with a pitcher on her head. All the time her attention is
concentrated on the pitcher.

In the case of the Gopis it was not that they had
not to make an effort to remember Krishna. They
spontaneously fell in love with him and some thing in them was on fire.
So when something in the
being is
touched like that, then concentration does not require effort or labour.

310

One may concentrate for one thing and quite a different
result may come–one may go to quite
another
line.

Sri Aurobindo: In my own case, Lele wanted me to get devotion
and love and hear inner voices.
Instead
I got into the Silent Brahman Consciousness.

Disciple:
And he prayed and tried to pull you into the other condition.

Disciple: I
find in my case that with little effort on my part many things have dropped.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, that is because you, or something in you,
wanted to drop these things.
Disciple: But there was no
corresponding effort for the results.

Sri Aurobindo: It may be so. It is not a question of
correspondence: with little effort something in
you wants to drop it sincerely and then the Grace finds it easy to act.
But all the same the effort is a
contributory
element. There are cases in which one goes on making effort and yet no result
comes
and even the condition becomes
worse. While suddenly you find, when you have given up the
effort, that the thing is done. It may be that the
effort was keeping up the resistance and when you give up the effort the
resistance says “This fellow has given up effort, so it is no use
persisting.”



MARCH, 1943

12th March 1943

Disciple: T
was such a nice person,–very good in behaviour etc.

Sri Aurobindo: ‘That is so because you do not know what the
person really is–you see only the
outside.’

Disciple:
But she was very disciplined.

Sri Aurobindo: “No–she was very nice so long as you did what she liked. But
otherwise she was a
person least
fitted for Sadhana. The family has a touch of madness. She was hysterical and
also there was dissatisfied sex. She looked very nice and people generally
think it is a sign of great
advance
when a man stops speaking to persons or if he retires like N. B. and N. and
even S. These are persons with small spiritual capacity. B.–yes but B. had a
great capacity. It was his inordinate
ego
that came in his way.”

312

Disciple: Mother is preparing 12 persons–apostles like
Christ?–and then other 12 will be taken up
etc.

Sri Aurobindo: “I don’t know it,–unless you believe that I
hold it as a State secret.” 26th March 1943

S.
Iyengar’s book on English poetry. “His Judgements are not always sound and
his quotations though they seem striking at first they don’t stand a second
reading. So that they can’t be taken as the best. For example, he speaks of
Oscar Wilde–but he has not referred to the “Ballad of the
Reading Goal” which is one of the best
things written in English. Also his estimate of Blunden’s descriptions of
nature-photographic and true to Nature perhaps–but it is very doubtful if they
will
survive.

“Shakespeare
you can go back to for the hundredth time. That is the test. Only T. S. Elliot
will
live–but that as a minor poet
only. The moderners all have got diction but it has no value without
Rhythm. They have no Rhythm.”

No one now reads Ben
Johnson because people are no longer interested in him.

313

APRIL, 1943

16th
April 1943

General Tokezyswaki: Polish leader came through
Umadevi, a Polish lady.
*



17th
April 1943

General
Tokezyswaki saw Mother at 3-30 for nearly an hour.

1. Synthesis
of Elements of different cultures.

2.
Nearly 3500
Polish refugees in India.

3.
One or two
hours to himself for reading about this literature.

Sri Aurobindo: “Such men will find great difficulties after the war because the
peace seems much
more difficult–war
is difficult enough”.

314

From
the notes. 18th April 1943 In Russia before the war there were 18 million in
prison–1/10th of the population!!

General Tokezyswaki had been to Russia–because he
was a Socialist. What he saw disillusioned
him. He was even imprisoned in Russia.

The spy system in Russia is very extensive. Each
man who is somebody is watched by three men.
In the army also one who does not fight has to face execution.

American
politicians want to retain their hold over North Africa if they can–to ensure
payment of
their money. They would
even like to have Persia and Iraque.

So,
the peace is not likely to be a very easy affair.

Spiritual
cure – method described – Blue ray – directed to the patient – Washes his own
hands.
Astral body seen near the
patient.

*

19th
April 1943

Spirit
communication–Desire to continue the family life of Earth. There are such
spirits who like a
reproduction of
the life on Earth.

Got tired of the same wife and husband.

315

Divorce suit in the other
world. The husbands might ask if the wives are Satis!

Letter from Dilip–with Krishnaprem’s. Whether
every time a Sadhaka makes personal effort can it
be said that it is to satisfy the Ego.

Sri Aurobindo: No, it can be to subordinate the Ego to the Divine. If it is to seek
power or to



satisfy
some other impulse then personal effort may have egoistic origin.

Disciple:
Could one make the surrender to a Guru whose outer nature is imperfect?

Sri Aurobindo: It has nothing to do with any human standards–moral or mental. Most
often it is
the Ego that says that
‘this fellow has got this defect, I won’t surrender to him.’

Disciple:
But the very act of accepting some one as Guru requires some perception or
feeling or
experience of the Divine
in the person?

Sri Aurobindo: Not necessarily. It may be only a belief in the Divinity of the Guru.

That
way it can be argued that God is imperfect because the exterior working in this
world is full of
imperfections,
ignorance, suffering, etc. All these things do not count. The question is
whether the
Divinity in the Guru can
awaken the Divine in the disciple.

Vivekananda was
conscious of Ramkrishna’s shortcomings and his mind was very agnostic. So it
took him years and he was fighting with himself
before he accepted Ramkrishna.

316

AUGUST, 1943 7th August 1943 Letter from Siddhartha (Nolini Sen’s son).

1.    Faith-Blind in Guru’s words.

2.   
Religion is superfluous and injurious to India.

3.   
What is Sri
Aurobindo doing? What has he done or is doing for India?

Sri Aurobindo: Why does Siddhartha want to argue about his faith? How can he prove
his faith by
arguments? He must know
that it can’t be done.

And now-a-days it is well-known that one argues in
favour of what one likes. It is not for arriving at the Truth. One can’t arrive
at the Truth by arguing.

He can find plenty of proof of people whose faith
has succeeded where all outer reason was against
them. There are many such things in history.

317

If England had only thought and depended on reason
then she should have made peace with Hitler.
She had no chance against Germany. But in spite of that she had faith
that she could win and she is
beginning
to win.

It was after the
Dunkirk that I openly came out with my declaration and gave the contribution
openly. If I had believed in appearances I should not have. It is in spite of
opposite appearances
that you have to
act on faith. I had fixed the 15th August and 15th September as the dates on
which
Germany would have defeat and
both the days they go the defeat (August I believe over London

and
September–the ‘invasion idea’ and ‘preparation’)

2.    I wanted De Gaulle to become the chief of the
Free French armies in North Africa. There were
many obstacles and the Americans came in with their pro-Vichy attitude.
But I went on pressing and ultimately it has succeeded.

3.    Also about the Tunisian campaign. There was lot
of swaying to and fro. But I persisted–First
time when the Allies attached they were only 30 thousand against 3 lakhs
Italians. If Wavell had
gone to
Tripoli at that time he would have succeeded. But they went to help Greece and
naturally
they had to retreat. But I
went on and at last they took Tunisia.

If
you depend upon reason then you can’t know what is Truth. Germany fought Russia
on her
reason and won and now Russia
is fighting Germany on her reasoning and is winning. It is apparent it is not
reason which is giving anyone the success. There is, or must be, something
behind that decides these things.

Our people cannot understand why one who has the
Divine consciousness or Brahmic
consciousness
should take

318

up sides in a fight. That is alright if you want
to remain in the Static Brahman. Then you can look
upon the whole thing as Maya and it may not exist
for you.

But I believe in Brahman siding against
Brahman–that the Brahman, I think, has been always
doing.

The distinction between the Ishwar consciousness
and Brahmic consciousness is not clear to many
people, and also some of the Monists consider Ishwar to be a lower
status than Brahman because it is dissolved in the Pralaya.

But Krishna took side openly in Maha Bharata and
Rama also. Rama they do not consider an
Avatar–He was weeping because he was not self-conscious–why! An
Avatar cannot weep!!

Sri
Aurobindo had sent the message to the Congress knowingly.

Disciple: There are some people who even try to maintain
that you knew fully that your message to
the Congress would fail and yet you sent it.

Sri Aurobindo: Yes, I knew that there was very little chance of its success.

Disciple: But suppose you have known that it would
certainly fail–then in that case you might
have spared the trouble of going and coming to Duraiswamy.

Sri Aurobindo: No, even if I had known for a certainty that it would fail still it had
to be done–It is a question of play of forces and the important thing is that
the other force should not be there.

We cannot explain
these things to people–this play of forces–who ask for rational explanation
because it is so irrational.

319



OCTOBER 1943 From notes

4th October 1943

1.    C. Rajagopalachari in the Puja issue of the ‘Amrat
Bazar’ has pleaded for the reconstruction and
revival of the Cripp’s proposal!! Sri Aurobindo found it ‘late’ but C.
R. had got back his clarity of mind. As to the actual revival when Wavell comes
the difficulties are 1. I. C. S. and Congress on two sides and 2. Jhinna on the
third.

2.   
Anil Baran’s article about Bengal flood
situation created a great stir in the Ashram. Sri Aurobindo’s plea was for organization by the people. Mere Government
regulation or work would
not do. The
ministry is people’s and so their dishonesty, want of public spirit and want of
tradition of honest public work is our fault.

Even if the people had rioted at some places,
Government would be compelled to act, etc.
320

3.    Jivatman descends here–not geographically. It is
a way of saying that ‘it takes up the
consciousness’
and ‘organizes the nature’ etc.

‘Who
gets Nirvana or who passes away into the Absolute’? ‘The Jivatman. It is the
Jivatman.’

Article by K. C. Vardachari. Answer to Malkani.
By ‘Chit’ in Ramanuja is it meant the surface
consciousness?

The
Narayan is indissolubly connected with manifestation. You can’t know him even
if he has an
existence independent of
his manifestation.

Sri Aurobindo: I would agree with him by saying that the Absolute is not knowable by
the mind.
But it is knowable to
itself. It has self-illumination (‘Swayam-Prakasha’).

4.   
On the 3rd
October Sri Aurobindo said: It seems in this war the human element is in the
background–the whole thing is so much dominated
by the machine. It may be illusion. But the men
of the past looked so much higher in comparison with the leaders of the
present crisis. Even look at
the generals. Napoleon and his generals you
find the human character there dominating. The leaders do not come off so high. Whether the machine can be used to help
men to good? It can help to make life more comfortable, it can add to the
convenience etc. but how can it aid men in spiritual or inner progress?

The End

top

This document was copied from http://park.kiev.ua/~demch/naph/Aurobindo/eventalk.htm

Original
copy of this document was placed at http://www.irdg.com/pc93/evetlksa.htm,
but now this
URL is not responsible

This
document was again compiled for free use as an ebook by Rolf Helmecke Webside Literaturen



It
can be copied or printed but should not be saled.

You
may also visit our English Site
containing works of Sri Aurobindo, The Mother and other
Yogis.

Febr 2001 Munich/Germany